Selected quad for the lemma: book_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
book_n body_n express_v great_a 66 3 2.1248 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A20672 Of the visible sacrifice of the Church of God· The first part. VVritten by Anonymus Eremita Doughty, Thomas, fl. 1618-1638. 1638 (1638) STC 7072.4; ESTC S116351 164,395 307

There are 33 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

vexation_n may_v cease_v and_o by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n it_o forth_o with_o cease_v and_o in_o the_o 10._o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n he_o say_v we_o sacrifice_n and_o do_v immolate_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n only_o and_o the_o sacrifice_n itself_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o 11._o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr origine_fw-la animae_fw-la he_o say_v according_a to_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o ecclesiastical_a rule_n it_o be_v by_o no_o mean_n grant_v that_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v offer_v for_o such_o as_o be_v not_o baptize_v which_o he_o also_o repeat_v again_o in_o the_o 15._o chapter_n of_o his_o 2._o book_n 4._o in_o his_o 1._o sermon_n upon_o the_o 33._o psalm_n he_o say_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n earth_n this_o sacrifice_n spread_v over_o the_o whole_a earth_n which_o the_o faithful_a who_o have_v read_v the_o scripture_n do_v know_v be_v not_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a law_n which_o sacrifice_n be_v spread_v over_o the_o whole_a globe_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o again_o in_o his_o second_o sermon_n upon_o the_o same_o psalm_n he_o say_v christ_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n institute_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n whereupon_o in_o his_o 86._o epistle_n he_o say_v christ_n give_v his_o blood_n to_o drink_v before_o his_o passion_n and_o in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o his_o 12._o book_n against_o faustus_n he_o say_v in_o this_o sacrament_n be_v drink_v that_o which_o flow_v out_o of_o the_o side_n of_o christ_n and_o upon_o the_o 56._o psalm_n he_o affirm_v that_o the_o jew_n who_o crucify_v christ_n and_o afterward_o be_v convert_v to_o believe_v in_o he_o in_o this_o sacrament_n drink_v by_o grace_n the_o same_o blood_n which_o through_o fury_n they_o have_v shed_v 5._o and_o because_o the_o same_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o sacrifice_n one_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o all_o sacrifice_n our_o lord_n be_v offer_v to_o god_n in_o all_o christian_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n though_o after_o a_o other_o manner_n therefore_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n of_o his_o 9_o book_n of_o confession_n call_v that_o which_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n in_o sacrifice_n by_o christian_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o redemtion_n say_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o redemtion_n be_v offer_v for_o his_o mother_n after_o her_o decease_n at_o her_o funeral_n and_o in_o the_o 13._o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n speak_v of_o his_o say_a mother_n s._n monica_n say_v she_o desire_v to_o be_v remember_v at_o the_o altar_n of_o god_n where_o at_o she_o use_v to_o assist_v without_o pretermission_n of_o altar_n this_o sacrifice_n dispense_v from_o the_o altar_n any_o one_o day_n and_o from_o whence_o she_o know_v that_o holy_a sacrifice_n to_o be_v dispense_v whereby_o the_o hand_n writing_n be_v blot_v out_o which_o carry_v our_o condemnation_n in_o it_o and_o whereby_o our_o enemy_n have_v triumph_v over_o us._n thus_o the_o glorious_a s._n augustine_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n as_o he_o further_o affirm_v in_o the_o 3._o question_n of_o his_o 49._o epistle_n say_v the_o sacrifice_n which_o we_o christian_n do_v now_o offer_v be_v not_o only_o demonstrate_v by_o the_o write_a word_n of_o the_o ghospell_n but_o also_o by_o the_o prophecy_n 6._o neither_o be_v this_o expression_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n our_o lord_n find_v only_o in_o s._n augustine_n but_o also_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n who_o be_v common_o style_v doctor_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o namely_o in_o s._n basil_n s._n chrisostome_n s._n ambrose_n s._n gregory_n and_o s._n hierome_n for_o the_o church_n be_v in_o peace_n in_o their_o time_n the_o first_o four_o of_o these_o five_o that_o be_v to_o say_v s._n basil_n s._n chrisostome_n s._n ambrose_n and_o s._n gregory_n every_o one_o of_o they_o set_v forth_o book_n where_o in_o they_o express_v the_o form_n and_o manner_n how_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n with_o great_a solemnity_n missall_n fover_n doctor_n set_v forth_o missall_n and_o how_o to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o same_o which_o book_n be_v extant_a in_o print_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o liturgy_n of_o s._n basil_n the_o liturgy_n of_o s._n chrisostome_n the_o mass_n of_o s._n ambrose_n and_o the_o book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o circle_n of_o the_o year_n set_v forth_o by_o s._n gregory_n the_o pope_n where_o of_o the_o first_o two_o be_v print_v with_o their_o work_n the_o latter_a be_v print_v by_o pamelius_n in_o his_o two_o tome_n of_o the_o missall_n of_o the_o latin_a father_n which_o liturgy_n or_o missall_n be_v in_o substance_n the_o same_o with_o those_o liturgy_n and_o missall_n which_o be_v use_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o also_o with_o the_o liturgy_n and_o missall_n which_o be_v before_o their_o time_n as_o with_o the_o liturgy_n of_o s._n peter_n s._n james_n s._n andrew_n s._n mark_v s._n clement_n etc._n etc._n as_o may_v manifest_o appear_v unto_o any_o man_n who_o shall_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o view_v they_o 7._o moreover_o s._n ambrose_n in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o sacrament_n set_v down_o the_o word_n which_o at_o this_o day_n be_v use_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n say_v will_v thou_o know_v how_o the_o eucharist_n be_v consecrate_v by_o divine_a word_n he_o be_v the_o word_n the_o priest_n say_v make_v this_o oblation_n apply_v able_a unto_o we_o reasonable_a and_o acceptable_a which_o be_v down_o upon_o the_o figure_n consecration_n bread_n a_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n before_o consecration_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n that_o be_v to_o say_v upon_o the_o bread_n not_o yet_o consecrate_v after_o it_o follow_v who_o the_o day_n before_o he_o suffer_v take_v bread_n into_o his_o holy_a hand_n look_v up_o into_o heaven_n unto_o thou_o o_o holy_a father_n almighty_a eternal_a god_n give_v thanks_n bless_v break_v and_o break_a give_v unto_o his_o apostle_n say_v take_v and_o eat_v of_o this_o all_o for_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n he_o take_v the_o chalice_n after_o he_o have_v sup_v that_o be_v the_o day_n before_o he_o suffer_v look_v up_o into_o heaven_n unto_o thou_o holy_a father_n almighty_a eternal_a god_n give_v thanks_n bless_a deliver_v to_o his_o apostle_n say_v take_v you_o and_o drink_v you_o all_o of_o it_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n consider_v every_o thing_n he_o say_v who_o the_o day_n before_o he_o suffer_v he_o take_v bread_n into_o his_o holy_a hand_n therefore_o it_o be_v bread_n before_o it_o be_v consecrate_v but_o when_o christ_n word_n do_v approach_v it_o be_v the_o christ._n after_o consecration_n the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n body_n of_o christ_n final_o hear_v he_o say_v take_v you_o &_o eat_v you_o all_o of_o it_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o before_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v a_o chalice_n full_a of_o wine_n and_o water_n but_o assoon_o as_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n have_v do_v their_o work_n there_o be_v make_v the_o blood_n which_o redeem_v the_o people_n therefore_o consider_v after_o how_o many_o sort_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v powerful_a to_o convert_v all_o thing_n and_o to_o conclude_v our_o lord_n jesus-christ_n himself_o do_v testify_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o receive_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o ought_v we_o to_o doubt_v of_o his_o sincerity_n and_o testimony_n thus_o s._n ambrose_n explicate_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o his_o time_n and_o the_o certainty_n there_o of_o in_o the_o eucharist_n before_o receive_v which_o manner_n of_o consecration_n be_v also_o use_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n at_o this_o day_n again_o in_o the_o 6._o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n he_o show_v that_o the_o intent_n of_o these_o word_n as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v do_v this_o so_o often_o you_o shall_v do_v it_o in_o commemoration_n of_o i_o until_o i_o commeagaine_n be_v to_o command_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o commemoration_n of_o his_o passion_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n he_o immediate_o add_v to_o these_o word_n the_o priest_n say_v therefore_o mindful_a of_o his_o glorious_a
the_o decree_n of_o apostle_n that_o none_o shall_v receive_v without_o answer_v amen_n child_n the_o belief_n of_o the_o true_a real_a and_o substantial_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o eucharist_n before_o receive_v that_o the_o apostle_n among_o other_o thing_n decree_v that_o none_o shall_v receive_v the_o eucharist_n without_o profess_v it_o to_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o answer_v amen_o to_o the_o priest_n or_o deacon_n when_o he_o call_v the_o eucharist_n before_o receive_v the_o body_n or_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o witness_v s._n clement_n in_o the_o 13._o chapter_n of_o his_o 8._o book_n of_o apostolical_a constitution_n say_v let_v the_o bishop_n deliver_v the_o oblation_n to_o the_o people_n say_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o let_v he_o who_o receave_v it_o say_z amen_o but_o let_v the_o deacon_n hold_v the_o chalice_n and_o administer_a it_o unto_o other_o let_v he_o say_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o chalice_n of_o life_n and_o he_o who_o do_v drink_v it_o let_v he_o say_v amen_n thus_o the_o apostle_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o this_o answer_n of_o amen_o by_o the_o people_n unto_o the_o priest_n affirm_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n before_o receive_v be_v a_o apostolical_a constitution_n conformable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n say_v amen_o amen_n i_o say_v unto_o you_o unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o if_o the_o son_n of_o god_n affirm_v under_o amen_o amen_n that_o the_o meat_n he_o will_v give_v shall_v be_v his_o flesh_n and_o the_o drink_v his_o blood_n what_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n who_o deny_v it_o but_o deceive_v people_n 9_o this_o practice_n of_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n before_o receive_v by_o the_o common_a people_n be_v thus_o establish_v in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n it_o continue_v as_o a_o general_a custom_n amogn_v the_o laiety_n and_o whole_a church_n in_o succeed_v age_n as_o witness_v s._n justine_n martyr_n in_o his_o second_o apology_n to_o amen_n s._n justine_n martyr_n of_o the_o answer_n amen_n the_o emperor_n antoninus_n pius_n the_o senate_n and_o people_n of_o rome_n who_o set_v down_o the_o manner_n and_o custom_n which_o the_o christian_n use_v in_o their_o communion_n say_v at_o the_o end_n of_o prayer_n we_o salute_v one_o a_o other_o with_o a_o kiss_n then_o be_v offer_v unto_o he_o who_o be_v chief_a among_o the_o brother_n bread_n and_o a_o cup_n mix_v with_o wine_n and_o water_n which_o after_o that_o he_o have_v receive_v he_o give_v praise_n and_o glory_n to_o the_o parent_n of_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o give_v thanks_o a_o good_a space_n that_o he_o be_v esteem_v by_o he_o worthy_a of_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v right_o perform_v or_o finish_v all_o the_o people_n which_o be_v present_a do_v give_v the_o blessing_n to_o the_o prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_a say_v amen_n and_o amen_o in_o the_o hebrew_n tongue_n be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v be_v it_o donn_v after_o that_o both_o the_o prelate_n have_v give_v thanks_o and_o all_o the_o people_n have_v give_v their_o blessing_n by_o say_v amen_o those_o who_o among_o we_o be_v call_v deacon_n give_v unto_o every_o one_o that_o be_v present_a etc._n etc._n and_o we_o take_v it_o to_o be_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus-christ_n thus_o s._n justine_n who_o live_v with_o the_o apostle_n scholar_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o even_o from_o the_o first_o plantation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n among_o the_o nation_n the_o laiety_n and_o common_a people_n use_v to_o aswere_v amen_o to_o the_o blessing_n and_o consecration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n thereby_o public_o to_o declare_v that_o they_o most_o firm_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n independent_a of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o receiver_n 10._o not_o long_o after_o s._n justine_n martyr_n live_v dionysius_n alexandrinus_n who_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o xistus_fw-la alexandrinus_n dionysius_n alexandrinus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n record_v by_o eusebius_n in_o the_o eight_o chapter_n of_o his_o 7._o book_n of_o history_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o answer_v amen_o to_o the_o word_n of_o thanksgiving_a and_o consecration_n by_o the_o laiety_n and_o common_a people_n say_v that_o a_o certain_a brother_n who_o have_v for_o a_o long_a time_n be_v esteem_v a_o faithful_a man_n among_o they_o and_o receive_v the_o communion_n because_o he_o have_v be_v baptize_v by_o wicked_a heretic_n with_o tear_n and_o sorrow_n desire_v of_o he_o that_o he_o may_v be_v baptize_v again_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o very_o say_v he_o i_o dare_v not_o do_v but_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o daily_a communion_n whereof_o he_o do_v participate_v with_o the_o faithful_a be_v of_o force_n sufficient_a to_o purge_v his_o soul_n for_o he_o who_o have_v hear_v the_o thanksgiving_a he_o who_o together_o with_o the_o rest_n have_v pronounce_v amen_o he_o who_o have_v approach_v to_o the_o table_n who_o have_v stretch_v forth_o his_o hand_n to_o receive_v that_o holy_a food_n who_o have_v receive_v it_o who_o have_v be_v for_o so_o long_o a_o time_n partaker_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus-christ_n i_o dare_v not_o whole_o renew_v his_o baptism_n thus_o s._n dionysius_n 11._o s._n cirill_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o his_o 5._o catechesis_fw-la hier._n s._n cirill_n of_o hier._n make_v also_o mention_v of_o this_o custom_n say_v thou_o present_v thy-self_n to_o the_o communion_n do_v not_o come_v with_o thy_o hand_n extend_v or_o thy_o finger_n open_a but_o make_v thy_o left_a hand_n serve_v to_o thy_o right_n as_o a_o seat_n or_o throne_n as_o he_o who_o ought_v to_o receive_v the_o king_n and_o contract_v together_o the_o palm_n of_o thy_o hand_n receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n answer_v amen_o and_o after_o thou_o have_v sanctify_v thy_o eye_n by_o the_o touch_n of_o the_o holy_a body_n receive_v or_o be_v partaker_n of_o it_o with_o confidence_n use_v great_a ear_n that_o thou_o lose_v none_o of_o it_o for_o all_o that_o thou_o do_v loose_a account_v it_o as_o the_o loss_n of_o one_o of_o thy_o proper_a member_n etc._n etc._n have_v communicate_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n present_a thyself_n to_o the_o chalice_n of_o his_o blood_n not_o stretch_v forth_o thy_o hand_n but_o incline_v in_o manner_n of_o adoration_n or_o worship_n say_v amen_n and_o this_o donn_n sanctify_v thyself_n and_o participate_v of_o christ_n thus_o s._n cirill_n for_o the_o better_a understanding_n whereof_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o the_o grecian_n receive_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n into_o the_o palm_n of_o their_o left_a hand_n and_o cour_v it_o with_o the_o right_n and_o so_o the_o left_a hand_n be_v as_o a_o seat_n or_o throne_n to_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n until_o the_o communicant_a receive_v it_o which_o he_o do_v not_o present_o but_o after_o some_o pious_a meditation_n or_o consideration_n yet_o at_o the_o deliur_n of_o the_o eucharist_n into_o the_o palm_n of_o his_o hand_n the_o priest_n say_v according_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o he_o who_o receive_v it_o answer_v amen_o and_o afterward_o communicate_v himself_o 12._o s._n ambrose_n also_o in_o the_o five_o chapter_n of_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o sacrament_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n ambrose_n s._n ambrose_n of_o all_o those_o who_o receive_v to_o profess_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n his_o word_n be_v these_o it_o be_v true_o a_o great_a and_o venerable_a thing_n that_o god_n rain_v manna_n to_o the_o jew_n from_o heaven_n but_o understand_v which_o be_v great_a manna_n from_o heaven_n or_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n certain_o who_o be_v the_o inlarge_a of_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o thou_o do_v not_o say_v amen_o in_o vain_a when_o thou_o take_v it_o now_o confess_v in_o spirit_n that_o thou_o receave_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o priest_n say_v unto_o thou_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o thou_o say_v amen_o that_o be_v to_o say_v true_a that_o which_o thy_o tongue_n do_v confess_v let_v thy_o affection_n hold_v 13._o s._n leo_n also_o the_o great_a speak_v of_o this_o answer_n leo._n s._n leo._n by_o amen_n to_o the_o eucharist_n when_o it_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o 6._o sermon_n of_o fast_v in_o the_o 7._o month_n say_v see_v that_o our_o lord_n do_v say_v if_o you_o do_v not_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o
by_o the_o suffering_n of_o our_o saviour_n upon_o the_o cross_n 10._o if_o any_o object_n and_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n it_o how_o god_n do_v desire_v sacrifice_n and_o not_o desire_v it_o often_o affirm_v that_o god_n do_v not_o desire_v sacrifice_n this_o objection_n s._n auguctine_n answer_v in_o the_o aforesaid_a chapter_n prove_v by_o many_o example_n of_o scripture_n that_o when_o it_o be_v say_v god_n do_v not_o require_v sacrifice_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o visible_a sign_n which_o be_v common_o call_v the_o sacrifice_n when_o it_o be_v without_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n for_o so_o it_o be_v but_o a_o false_a sign_n and_o hypocrisy_n such_o as_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o cain_n who_o offer_v his_o good_n as_o a_o visible_a sign_n but_o not_o his_o heart_n in_o a_o invisible_a sacrifice_n and_o therefore_o his_o sacrifice_n be_v reject_v and_o abell_n accept_v as_o witness_v rupertus_n in_o his_o 4._o book_n upon_o genesis_n and_o second_o chapter_n saying_n by_o faith_n say_v s._n paul_n abel_n offer_v a_o great_a host_n than_o cain_n for_o in_o exterior_a worship_n and_o religion_n they_o both_o offer_v alike_o and_o therefore_o both_o of_o they_o offer_v right_o but_o cain_n do_v not_o right_o divide_v for_o cain_n while_o he_o offer_v his_o good_n to_o god_n keep_v himself_o unto_o himself_o have_v his_o heart_n fix_v in_o earthly_a desire_n such_o portion_n or_o outward_a gift_n god_n do_v not_o accept_v of_o but_o by_o himself_o say_v in_o the_o 23._o of_o the_o proverbe_n son_n give_v unto_o i_o thy_o heart_n wherefore_o abel_n first_o offer_v unto_o god_n his_o heart_n and_o then_o his_o good_n and_o so_o offer_v by_o faith_n a_o great_a host_n than_o cain_n who_o offer_v the_o outward_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v the_o visible_a sign_n but_o keep_v the_o inward_a which_o god_n most_o esteem_v unto_o himself_o 11._o the_o case_n stand_v before_o god_n with_o sacrifice_n alike_o the_o case_n of_o prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n alike_o as_o it_o do_v with_o prayer_n god_n command_v prayer_n mark_n 14._o 38._o and_o yet_o say_v that_o some_o kind_n of_o prayer_n be_v hypocrisy_n math._n 15._o 7._o in_o like_a manner_n god_n so_o affect_v sacrifice_n that_o under_o penalty_n of_o death_n he_o prohibit_v it_o to_o be_v offer_v unto_o any_o but_o unto_o himself_o exod._n 22._o 20._o and_o yet_o say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v sacrifice_n offer_v unto_o he_o isay_n 1._o 12._o the_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o exterior_a prayer_n which_o be_v common_o call_v prayer_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o interior_a prayer_n of_o the_o heart_n which_o when_o it_o want_v be_v hypocrisy_n as_o a_o false_a sign_n so_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v common_o call_v sacrifice_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o interior_a and_o when_o it_o be_v without_o this_o it_o be_v hypocrisy_n as_o a_o false_a sign_n so_o god_n will_v prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n and_o he_o will_v not_o prayer_n nor_o sacrifice_n he_o will_v have_v prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n when_o they_o be_v conjoin_v with_o the_o prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o he_o will_v not_o have_v prayer_n nor_o sacrifice_n when_o they_o be_v not_o accompany_v with_o the_o heart_n because_o they_o be_v hypocrisy_n as_o make_v show_n of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o whereupon_o after_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o 50._o psalm_n have_v say_v a_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n be_v a_o afflict_a spirit_n a_o contryte_n and_o humble_a heart_n o_o god_n thou_o will_v not_o despise_v etc._n etc._n he_o add_v then_o shall_v thou_o accept_v sacrifice_n of_o justice_n oblation_n and_o holocau_v then_o shall_v they_o lay_v calf_n upon_o thy_o altar_n when_o with_o the_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n man_n shall_v offer_v the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n by_o sorrow_n for_o the_o negligence_n of_o their_o life_n past_a contrition_n for_o their_o sin_n and_o humiliation_n before_o god_n unto_o who_o that_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v they_o shall_v they_o offer_v a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrifice_n of_o justice_n oblation_n and_o holocauste_v acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o not_o otherwise_o because_o the_o outward_a sacrifice_n with_o out_o this_o inward_a and_o invisible_a be_v but_o hipocrysie_n 12._o visible_a sacrifice_n say_v saint_n augustine_n in_o the_o place_n a_o fore_n reoyt_v be_v sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a thing_n visible_a sacrifice_n be_v sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a as_o word_n be_v of_o thing_n as_o word_n be_v sign_n of_o thing_n wherefore_o when_o without_o any_o just_a necessity_n man_n speak_v word_n and_o have_v other_o intention_n in_o their_o heart_n than_o their_o word_n sound_a or_o signify_v it_o be_v but_o dissimulation_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o word_n which_o be_v ordain_v to_o express_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o heart_n so_o when_o we_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n without_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n it_o be_v hypocrisy_n or_o dissemble_a sanctity_n which_o be_v double_a iniquity_n because_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v institute_v unto_o this_o end_n that_o they_o may_v be_v a_o public_a sacred_a visible_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o man_n heart_n unto_o god_n as_o word_n be_v ordain_v to_o express_v the_o sincerity_n of_o man_n mind_n and_o because_o man_n shall_v always_o have_v a_o intention_n and_o be_v ever_o ready_a to_o give_v his_o heart_n and_o soul_n to_o god_n without_o dissimulation_n therefore_o he_o may_v never_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n without_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o heart_n 13._o s._n augustine_n express_v the_o excellency_n of_o invisible_a the_o excellency_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n conjoin_v to_o the_o invisible_a this_o visible_a sacrifice_n when_o it_o be_v accompany_v with_o the_o visible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o how_o acceptable_a it_o be_v unto_o god_n and_o unto_o the_o church_n triumphant_a in_o heaven_n add_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n say_v when_o we_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n together_o with_o the_o invisible_a of_o our_o heart_n then_o all_o the_o angel_n and_o the_o superior_a power_n and_o the_o more_o powerful_a spirit_n through_o their_o goodness_n &_o piety_n do_v favour_n we_o and_o rejoice_v with_o we_o and_o according_a to_o their_o power_n do_v help_v we_o to_o offer_v this_o visible_a sacrifice_n thus_o s._n augustine_n of_o the_o excellency_n of_o this_o visible_a sacrifice_n when_o it_o be_v unyte_v unto_o the_o invisible_a of_o our_o heart_n and_o how_o acceptable_a it_o be_v unto_o god_n and_o unto_o the_o whole_a triumphant_a church_n in_o heaven_n 14._o the_o reason_n why_o the_o triumphant_a church_n in_o sacrifice_n why_o the_o angel_n rejoice_v at_o the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n heaven_n which_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v do_v consist_v of_o the_o assembly_n of_o many_o thousand_o angel_n do_v so_o rejoice_v at_o the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n when_o it_o be_v accompany_v with_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v for_o that_o they_o be_v as_o they_o themselves_o say_v fellow_n servant_n with_o those_o who_o serve_v god_n upon_o earth_n and_o see_v that_o man_n here_o upon_o earth_n can_v continewally_v without_o intermission_n think_v of_o god_n and_o honour_v he_o with_o the_o honour_n which_o be_v only_o due_a unto_o he_o by_o a_o perpetual_a and_o continewall_n sacrify_v of_o their_o heart_n unto_o he_o as_o they_o in_o heaven_n do_v who_o day_n and_o night_n cry_v holy_a holy_a lord_n god_n omnipotent_a and_o so_o be_v eternal_o happy_a therefore_o they_o do_v rejoice_v that_o yet_o sometime_o man_n upon_o earth_n will_v actual_o think_v upon_o god_n and_o actual_o honour_v he_o with_o the_o honour_n of_o latria_n worship_v due_a only_o unto_o he_o and_o consecrate_v their_o heart_n unto_o he_o alone_o who_o be_v their_o end_n and_o chief_a good_a thereby_o to_o become_v partaker_n of_o a_o little_a drop_n of_o their_o happiness_n for_o as_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 22._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o confession_n say_v this_o be_v happy_a life_n to_o rejoice_v in_o god_n of_o god_n and_o for_o god_n this_o be_v it_o and_o other_o be_v none_o now_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o christian_n be_v bind_v to_o offer_v this_o 4._o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n or_o no_o the_o puritan_n deny_v that_o in_o the_o christian_a church_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v any_o such_o kind_n of_o extenall_a church_n puritan_n deny_v external_a visible_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n visible_a sacrifice_n offer_v unto_o god_n the_o moderate_a sort_n of_o protestant_n do_v after_o a_o sort_n confess_v it_o in_o word_n and_o doctrine_n though_o not_o in_o practice_n as_o his_o late_a decease_a majesty_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o cardinal_n perron_n relate_v by_o casaubon_n say_v the_o
which_o he_o then_o do_v for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o luk_n 22._o and_o so_o teach_v his_o follower_n to_o offer_v the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n to_o god_n with_o he_o who_o be_v their_o head_n lord_n and_o master_n that_o though_o for_o their_o own_o sake_n and_o multitude_n of_o sin_n forme_o commit_v their_o invisible_a sacrifice_n may_v be_v less_o grateful_a yet_o by_o he_o and_o through_o he_o who_o be_v their_o head_n it_o may_v be_v also_o most_o acceptable_a 7._o our_o saviour_n out_o of_o his_o infinite_a wisdom_n have_v bestow_v himself_o upon_o we_o for_o to_o be_v the_o only_a sacrifice_n why_o our_o saviour_n will_v be_v our_o sacrifice_n public_a sacred_a solemn_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n not_o only_o to_o oblige_v we_o daily_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n and_o present_a god_n the_o father_n with_o his_o son_n in_o who_o he_o be_v well_o please_v but_o also_o to_o offer_v ourselves_o with_o he_o and_o by_o he_o and_o not_o to_o offer_v he_o alone_o who_o be_v our_o head_n and_o retain_v ourselves_o who_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v his_o member_n unto_o ourselves_o as_o witness_v s._n augustine_n in_o ourselves_o with_o the_o sacrifice_n we_o be_v to_o offer_v also_o ourselves_o the_o six_o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n say_v the_o church_n do_v frequent_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n which_o the_o faithful_a know_v where_o it_o be_v show_v unto_o he_o that_o in_o the_o oblation_n which_o he_o do_v offer_v he_o be_v also_o offer_v himself_o again_o in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o his_o say_a book_n say_v christ_n be_v the_o priest_n he_o offer_v and_o he_o be_v the_o oblation_n or_o thing_n offer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o which_o thing_n he_o will_v shall_v be_v the_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n which_o church_n as_o body_n of_o he_o her_o head_n have_v learned_a to_o offer_v herself_o by_o he_o thus_o s._n augustine_n with_o who_o also_o agree_v eusebius_n caesariensis_n in_o the_o 10._o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n of_o evangelicall_a demonstration_n say_v christ_n labour_v for_o all_o our_o salvation_n offer_v as_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a victim_n and_o a_o singular_a sacrifice_n unto_o his_o father_n that_o we_o may_v offer_v ourselves_o to_o god_n himself_o for_o a_o sacrifice_n so_o that_o among_o the_o other_o end_n why_o christ_n our_o lord_n institute_v a_o visible_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n this_o be_v one_o that_o we_o may_v together_o with_o he_o offer_v ourselves_o whereupon_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a in_o his_o 37._o homily_n upon_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o his_o dialogue_n and_o 59_o chapter_n say_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o when_o we_o offer_v sacrifice_n that_o we_o immolate_v ourselves_o to_o god_n in_o contrition_n of_o heart_n for_o that_o we_o who_o celebrate_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n aught_o to_o imitate_v that_o which_o we_o do_v for_o than_o it_o shall_v be_v true_o a_o host_n for_o we_o to_o god_n when_o we_o shall_v be_v make_v ourselves_o a_o host_n for_o which_o cause_n when_o bishopp_n make_v priest_n they_o say_v unto_o they_o as_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o pontifical_a understand_v that_o which_o you_o do_v imitate_v that_o which_o you_o handle_v to_o this_o end_n that_o celebrate_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n you_o procure_v to_o mortify_v your_o member_n from_o all_o vice_n and_o concupiscence_n thus_o these_o father_n whereby_o it_o do_v appear_v that_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n have_v institute_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o we_o in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n that_o we_o may_v in_o offer_v it_o also_o offer_v ourselves_o in_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n by_o a_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n 8._o in_o like_a manner_n our_o lord_n also_o take_v the_o chalice_n chalice_n sacrifice_n institute_v in_o the_o chalice_n after_o supper_n say_v even_o as_o protestant_n translate_v this_o chalice_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o luk._n 22._o as_o a_o sacred_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o your_o heart_n to_o god_n as_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o write_a law_n which_o be_v type_n and_o sign_n of_o this_o and_o end_v when_o this_o new_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v bring_v in_o and_o institute_v by_o our_o lord_n as_o witness_v s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n say_v the_o many_o and_o diverse_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v sign_n of_o this_o true_a sacrifice_n this_o one_o sacrifice_n be_v figurative_o foretell_v by_o many_o sacrifice_n as_o if_o one_o thing_n shall_v be_v deliver_v with_o variety_n testament_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n succeed_v in_o place_n of_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n of_o word_n lest_o in_o be_v much_o commend_v it_o may_v grow_v iedious_a to_o this_o chief_a &_o true_a sacrifice_n all_o the_o false_a sacrifice_n have_v give_v place_n whereupon_o s._n chrisostom_n upon_o 26._o the_o chapter_n of_o s._n matthew_n say_v as_o the_o old_a testament_n have_v sheep_n and_o calf_n in_o their_o sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n see_v the_o new_a have_v our_o lord_n blood_n for_o which_o cause_n after_o that_o our_o lord_n have_v offer_v sacrifice_n and_o administrate_v communion_n in_o his_o blood_n he_o present_o command_v the_o apostle_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n without_o shed_v it_o to_o god_n or_o offer_v it_o in_o sacrifice_n say_v this_o do_v you_o the_o same_o that_o he_o then_o do_v as_o offen_n as_o you_o shall_v drink_v for_o the_o commemoration_n of_o i_o 1._o cor._n 11._o 15._o whole_o forbid_v they_o to_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n in_o commemoration_n of_o he_o without_o offer_v it_o first_o in_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n as_o a_o sacred_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n least_o at_o any_o time_n they_o shall_v drink_v in_o commemoration_n of_o he_o and_o not_o of_o drink_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n as_o a_o sacred_a sign_n of_o the_o common_a union_n of_o their_o heart_n with_o god_n 9_o that_o this_o visible_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n be_v not_o only_o institute_v by_o our_o saviour_n for_o a_o public_a exercise_n of_o the_o sacrifice_a of_o our_o heart_n to_o god_n and_o a_o daily_a solemn_a adoration_n of_o he_o with_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_n and_o commemoration_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n but_o also_o for_o the_o preservation_n of_o unity_n peace_n and_o society_n among_o ourselves_o s._n paul_n do_v witness_v say_v the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o bread_n be_v it_o not_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o be_v many_o we_o be_v one_o bread_n one_o body_n all_o that_o participate_v of_o one_o bread_n 1._o cor._n 10._o 16._o whereupon_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o 57_o epistle_n allege_v this_o text_n say_v the_o head_n of_o this_o body_n the_o church_n be_v christ_n and_o the_o unity_n of_o this_o body_n be_v commend_v in_o our_o sacrifice_n which_o the_o apostle_n do_v brief_o signify_v say_v be_v many_o we_o be_v one_o bread_n one_o body_n again_o in_o his_o 59_o epistle_n and_o 5._o question_n he_o say_v all_o thing_n be_v vow_v which_o be_v offer_v unto_o god_n especial_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o holy_a altar_n by_o which_o sacrament_n be_v preach_v and_o declare_v a_o other_o our_o great_a vow_n whereby_o we_o vow_v to_o remain_v in_o christ_n as_o in_o the_o conjunction_n or_o close_v together_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n 10._o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n be_v institute_v as_o a_o sacred_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n all_o those_o who_o offer_v sacrifice_n as_o they_o shall_v do_v offer_v to_o god_n the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n and_o thereby_o as_o s._n augustine_n here_o say_v do_v preach_v and_o declare_v agreat_a vow_n or_o promise_n which_o be_v to_o remain_v unite_a member_n in_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n whereupon_o s._n chrisostome_n in_o his_o 24._o homily_n upon_o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n say_v o_o my_o belove_a let_v we_o have_v care_n of_o the_o brethren_n and_o let_v we_o preserve_v that_o unity_n with_o they_o which_o be_v in_o we_o in_o our_o own_o body_n for_o unto_o this_o that_o terrible_a and_o most_o fearful_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n do_v call_v we_o
to_o preserve_v in_o man_n the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o unity_n and_o concord_n among_o themselves_o that_o not_o only_o the_o faithful_a in_o all_o age_n use_v it_o to_o this_o effect_n and_o purpose_n but_o also_o all_o the_o gentill_n and_o heathen_n who_o be_v not_o sacrifice_n all_o the_o gentill_n the_o atheist_n and_o epicure_n except_v offer_v sacrifice_n atheist_n or_o epicure_n and_o deny_v not_o god_n or_o god_n or_o he_o or_o their_o providence_n over_o mankind_n as_o we_o shall_v find_v by_o experience_n for_o if_o we_o look_v into_o the_o act_n deed_n book_n history_n or_o relation_n of_o such_o gentill_n or_o ancient_n or_o modern_a heathen_a people_n who_o be_v at_o this_o day_n or_o have_v be_v in_o the_o world_n in_o former_a age_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o all_o atheist_n and_o epicure_n only_o except_v offer_v external_a visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o some_o god_n true_a or_o false_a as_o the_o babylonians_n assyrian_n chaldean_n cananit_n philistian_o egyptian_n ethiopian_n greek_n roman_n saracen_n turck_n ancient_a or_o modern_a heathen_a people_n of_o europe_n asia_n africa_n and_o america_n who_o all_o universal_o have_v and_o have_v priest_n altar_n and_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n as_o witness_v all_o the_o author_n who_o make_v any_o mention_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o these_o nation_n who_o testimony_n in_o this_o short_a treatise_n will_v be_v to_o long_o to_o set_v down_o and_o therefore_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n unto_o their_o own_o writing_n as_o unto_o the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n s._n augustine_n in_o his_o 18_o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n athanasius_n in_o his_o oration_n against_o the_o gentiles_n and_o epiphanius_n in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o heresy_n unto_o cicero_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o god_n herodotus_n diodorus_n siculus_n etc._n etc._n 2._o and_o for_o late_a writer_n i_o refer_v the_o reader_n unto_o geraldus_fw-la of_o the_o god_n of_o the_o gentiles_n christopher_n richerius_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o turckes_n septem_fw-la castrensis_fw-la of_o the_o faith_n and_o religion_n of_o the_o turk_n samuel_n purchas_n in_o his_o relation_n of_o the_o religion_n observe_v in_o all_o age_n lewis_n godfrey_n in_o his_o 12._o tome_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o east_n indies_n and_o other_o whereupon_o plato_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o his_o 10._o dialogue_n in_o his_o book_n of_o law_n say_v necessity_n the_o custom_n of_o the_o gentiles_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o their_o necessity_n it_o have_v always_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o those_o who_o be_v in_o danger_n or_o want_v any_o thing_n or_o when_o their_o substance_n increase_v to_o consecrate_v something_o to_o the_o god_n and_o vow_v sacrifice_n with_o who_o agree_v s._n thomas_n in_o his_o 2._o 2._o quest_n 85._o art_n 1._o say_v in_o every_o age_n and_o among_o man_n of_o all_o nation_n have_v always_o be_v offer_v up_o of_o sacrifice_n insomuch_o that_o among_o all_o the_o heathen_a people_n that_o be_v at_o this_o day_n or_o heretofore_o have_v be_v atheist_n and_o epicure_n only_o except_v there_o be_v not_o nor_o have_v there_o be_v find_v any_o so_o impious_a and_o barbarous_a in_o the_o whole_a globe_n of_o the_o earth_n who_o have_v not_o or_o yet_o do_v not_o offer_v some_o kind_n of_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n thereby_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o sovereignty_n of_o some_o god_n true_a or_o false_a over_o they_o which_o be_v so_o true_a that_o even_o at_o this_o day_n we_o may_v say_v unto_o the_o atheist_n epicure_n and_o puritan_n of_o this_o age_n who_o have_v no_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n as_o plutark_o in_o his_o book_n against_o coletes_n say_v unto_o the_o epicure_n coletes_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o his_o book_n if_o you_o travel_v throughout_o the_o world_n well_o you_o may_v find_v city_n without_o sacrifice_n no_o city_n without_o sacrifice_n wall_n without_o writing_n without_o king_n not_o people_v or_o inhabit_v without_o house_n without_o money_n or_o man_n or_o desirous_a of_o coin_n who_o know_v not_o what_o theater_n or_o public_a hall_n of_o bodily_a exercise_n mean_v but_o never_o be_v there_o or_o ever_o shall_v there_o be_v any_o one_o city_n see_v which_o use_v no_o sacrifice_n either_o to_o obtain_v good_a blessing_n or_o to_o avoid_v heavy_a curse_n or_o calamity_n moreover_o the_o offer_v up_o of_o sacrifice_n unto_o some_o god_n be_v by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n so_o high_o esteem_v among_o the_o heathen_n that_o if_o any_o man_n commit_v any_o wickedness_n or_o impiety_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o the_o god_n he_o be_v to_o suffer_v death_n for_o his_o offence_n as_o witness_v plato_n in_o the_o aforesaid_a dialogue_n say_v if_o any_o shall_v commit_v wicked_a impiety_n or_o shall_v offend_v either_o in_o his_o private_a or_o public_a sacrificinge_n worship_n of_o the_o god_n he_o shall_v be_v condemn_v to_o death_n as_o one_o who_o sacrifice_v impure_o 3_o this_o be_v the_o end_n and_o use_v of_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n to_o preserve_v in_o man_n the_o memory_n and_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o unity_n and_o society_n with_o he_o and_o among_o themselves_o and_o all_o prudent_a law_n be_v chief_o institute_v to_o the_o same_o end_n we_o never_o read_v of_o any_o prudent_a lawgiver_n or_o sacrifice_n all_o the_o prudent_a lawgiver_n institute_v the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n prince_n though_o a_o infidel_n or_o heathen_a that_o give_v law_n unto_o any_o commonwealth_n or_o found_v a_o monarchy_n but_o he_o institute_v external_a visible_a sacrifice_n to_o be_v offer_v unto_o some_o suppose_a god_n as_o cham_n founder_n of_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o egyptian_n chus_n founder_v of_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o ethiopian_n nemrod_n belus_n founder_n of_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o babylonians_n ninus_n founder_v of_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o assyrian_n jon_n cecrops_n deucalion_n lycurgus_n lawgivers_n to_o the_o grecian_n numa_n pompilius_n the_o first_o and_o principalst_a statesman_n among_o the_o roman_n all_o which_o noble_a and_o renown_a personage_n to_o use_v plutarcks_n word_n in_o his_o book_n against_o coletes_n make_v the_o people_n devout_a affectionate_a and_o zealous_a to_o the_o god_n in_o prayer_n oath_n oracle_n prophecy_n and_o sacrifice_n either_o to_o obtain_v good_a blessing_n or_o to_o avert_v heavy_a curse_n and_o calamity_n insomuch_o as_o plato_n in_o the_o 8._o dialogue_n of_o his_o book_n of_o law_n beside_o solemn_a sacrifice_n athens_n plato_n ordain_v that_o 365_o sacrifice_n shall_v daily_o be_v offer_v in_o athens_n use_v upon_o great_a festival_n day_n ordain_v that_o in_o the_o city_n of_o athens_n there_o shall_v be_v 365._o sacrifice_n offer_v every_o day_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o some_o one_o or_o other_o of_o the_o magistrate_n shall_v always_o be_v offer_v sacrifice_n to_o some_o of_o the_o god_n for_o the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o city_n of_o themselves_o and_o their_o good_n 4._o lycurgus_n the_o lawgiver_n to_o the_o lacedaemonian_n lycurgus_n the_o frugal_a sacrifice_n of_o lycurgus_n ordain_v spare_v and_o frugal_a sacrifice_n to_o be_v offer_v unto_o the_o god_n make_v answer_v as_o plutark_o affirm_v in_o his_o life_n that_o the_o honour_n due_a unto_o the_o god_n may_v never_o fail_v among_o they_o and_o this_o these_o heathen_a man_n and_o infidel_n do_v by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n which_o dictate_v unto_o they_o that_o there_o will_v be_v no_o constant_a unity_n or_o civil_a society_n or_o religion_n among_o they_o but_o by_o offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o some_o true_a or_o suppose_a god_n or_o god_n thereby_o to_o express_v the_o inward_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n and_o soul_n and_o acknowledge_v visible_o a_o union_n in_o one_o supreme_a sovereign_n and_o among_o themselves_o moreover_o the_o gentile_n and_o sacrifice_n the_o gentill_n communicate_v of_o their_o sacrifice_n heathen_a people_n not_o only_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o honour_n of_o their_o god_n but_o also_o do_v eat_v or_o communicate_v of_o their_o sacrifice_n to_o mantayn_v a_o more_o firm_a unity_n and_o society_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o their_o god_n as_o the_o scripture_n witness_v say_v the_o isralits_n fall_v in_o to_o idolatry_n offer_v holocau_v and_o pacifique_a host_n to_o the_o molcen_n calf_n and_o the_o people_n sit_v down_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v exod._n 32._o 6._o afer_fw-la the_o manner_n of_o the_o egyptian_n from_o whence_o they_o come_v who_o chief_a god_n in_o their_o time_n be_v a_o calf_n as_o witness_v s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 18._o chapter_n of_o his_o 5._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n again_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n fornicate_v with_o the_o daughter_n of_o moab_n who_o call_v they_o to_o their_o sacrifice_n and_o they_o do_v eat_v and_o adore_v their_o god_n numb_a 25._o 5._o and_o because_o the_o gentill_n and_o
heathen_a people_n do_v not_o only_o eat_v of_o thing_n offer_v up_o in_o sacrifice_n unto_o their_o god_n but_o also_o estemeed_o that_o sacrifice_n the_o union_n among_o the_o gentile_n by_o communicate_v of_o sacrifice_n those_o who_o do_v eat_v of_o their_o sacrifice_n have_v union_n peace_n and_o society_n with_o they_o and_o their_o god_n or_o idol_n therefore_o both_o in_o the_o old_a law_n and_o in_o the_o new_a the_o faithful_a be_v prohibit_v to_o eat_v of_o the_o meat_n which_o be_v offer_v up_o to_o idol_n exod._n 34._o 25._o act._n 15._o 29._o and_o 1._o cor._n 10._o 21._o where_o s._n paul_n say_v to_o the_o faithful_a you_o cannott_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o table_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o table_n of_o devil_n whereupon_o nectarius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n in_o his_o oration_n idolatry_n julian_n craft_n to_o bring_v the_o christian_n to_o idolatry_n which_o he_o make_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o lent_n relate_v that_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la desirous_a to_o compel_v the_o catholic_n of_o constantinople_n to_o a_o exterior_a kind_n of_o participation_n with_o idolator_n and_o infidel_n cause_v all_o the_o bread_n and_o meat_n with_o be_v public_o to_o be_v sell_v in_o constantinople_n to_o be_v offer_v up_o in_o sacrifice_n unto_o the_o god_n that_o so_o say_v he_o they_o may_v all_o be_v compel_v to_o eat_v of_o meat_n immolate_a to_o idol_n or_o else_o perish_v with_o hunger_n whereupon_o the_o christian_n seek_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o theodorus_n the_o martyr_n to_o know_v what_o they_o may_v do_v to_o save_v the_o faithful_a from_o perish_v of_o hunger_n divine_a answer_n be_v make_v that_o instead_o of_o bread_n they_o shall_v use_v boil_a wheat_n for_o their_o meat_n which_o the_o rich_a sort_n for_o a_o whole_a week_n together_o bestow_v upon_o the_o poor_a so_o julian_n be_v overcome_v by_o the_o continency_n and_o constancy_n of_o the_o christian_n command_v that_o pure_a meat_n with_o out_o any_o spott_n shall_v be_v bring_v again_o to_o the_o market_n 6._o and_o not_o only_o the_o scripture_n and_o ecclesiastical_a history_n make_v mention_n how_o the_o heaten_v honour_v their_o god_n with_o sacrifice_n and_o after_o do_v eat_v of_o the_o say_a sacrifice_n to_o maintain_v friendship_n and_o society_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o their_o god_n but_o also_o heathen_a author_n themselves_o as_o homer_n virgil_n plutark_o macrobius_n and_o valerius_n maximus_n who_o write_v that_o in_o the_o feast_n which_o the_o roman_a septemviri_fw-la make_v in_o the_o capitol_n to_o jupiter_n which_o be_v after_o sacrifice_v jupiter_n be_v invite_v to_o supper_n in_o a_o bed_n and_o juno_n and_o minerva_n sit_v in_o chair_n to_o signify_v that_o eat_v the_o meat_n with_o be_v offer_v in_o sacrifice_n they_o communicate_v and_o feast_v with_o their_o go_n and_o the_o same_o do_v testify_v plutark_o in_o his_o book_n entitle_v that_o there_o be_v no_o pleasant_a life_n according_a to_o epicurus_n say_v king_n &_o prince_n keep_v great_a cheer_n in_o their_o royal_a court_n and_o make_v certain_a royal_a and_o public_a feast_n for_o all_o comer_n but_o those_o which_o they_o hold_v in_o the_o sacred_a temple_n at_o sacrifice_n and_o solemnity_n of_o the_o gentile_n the_o solemn_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o gentile_n god_n perform_v with_o fragrant_a perfume_n and_o odoriferous_a incense_n where_o it_o seem_v that_o man_n approach_v near_o unto_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o god_n and_o think_v they_o even_o touch_v they_o and_o be_v conversant_a with_o they_o in_o all_o honour_n and_o reverence_n such_o feast_n yield_v a_o more_o rare_a joy_n and_o singular_a delight_n than_o any_o other_o by_o the_o assure_a hope_n and_o full_a persuasion_n that_o god_n be_v there_o present_a propitious_a favourable_a and_o gracious_a and_o that_o he_o accept_v in_o good_a part_n the_o honour_n and_o service_n donn_v unto_o he_o so_o plutark_o and_o virgil_n in_o the_o 8._o of_o his_o eneides_n affirm_v the_o same_o of_o aeneas_n and_o his_o trojan_n say_v then_o choose_v stripling_n and_o the_o priest_n who_o yet_o stand_v at_o the_o altar_n straight_o before_o they_o set_v oxen_v broil_v entrail_n f●ll_o with_o manchet_n fine_a basket_n and_o serve_v they_o of_o the_o pure_a wine_n aeneas_n and_o his_o trojan_n take_v for_o cheer_n the_o chine_n and_o hallow_a inward_o of_o a_o steer_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o infidel_n and_o heathen_a people_n to_o take_v the_o flesh_n with_o be_v offer_v up_o in_o sacrifice_n to_o their_o god_n from_o the_o altar_n of_o their_o idol_n and_o bring_v it_o to_o the_o table_n of_o man_n that_o those_o who_o offer_v may_v eat_v of_o it_o with_o their_o friend_n and_o such_o as_o be_v invite_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o isralits_n who_o as_o be_v set_v down_o more_o particular_o in_o the_o 1._o book_n of_o king_n and_o 1._o chapter_n offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o god_n and_o after_o communicate_v of_o the_o say_a sacrifice_n among_o themselves_o and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v that_o all_o heathen_n and_o gentill_n who_o be_v not_o atheist_n or_o epicure_n and_o either_o deny_v not_o god_n or_o god_n or_o he_o or_o their_o providence_n over_o mankind_n offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o some_o suppose_a god_n and_o communicate_v of_o the_o same_o thereby_o to_o give_v divine_a honour_n unto_o their_o god_n and_o maintaynunitie_n peace_n and_o society_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o their_o go_n chap._n iu._n of_o all_o the_o visible_a outward_a action_n of_o man_n exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n be_v chief_o due_a unto_o god_n as_o god_n and_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n 1._o in_o all_o the_o kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n there_o be_v some_o particular_a visible_a and_o know_v sign_n of_o dignity_n honour_n and_o worship_n belong_v only_o unto_o the_o king_n or_o supreme_a governor_n as_o they_o be_v king_n magistrate_n some_o visible_a know_v sign_n of_o honour_n due_a unto_o supreme_a magistrate_n or_o supreme_a governor_n which_o may_v not_o be_v give_v unto_o any_o other_o under_o penalty_n of_o treason_n and_o death_n as_o sceptre_n or_o crown_n or_o the_o like_a and_o god_n not_o only_o be_v king_n of_o king_n revel_v 9_o 24._o and_o prince_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n revel_v 1._o 5._o but_o also_o god_n and_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n revel_v 3._o 11._o and_o have_v dominion_n over_o all_o 1._o chronic._n 29._o 12._o in_o reason_n he_o must_v needs_o have_v some_o one_o particular_a external_a visible_a know_a sign_n of_o adoration_n honour_n and_o worship_v due_a only_o unto_o he_o as_o he_o be_v god_n and_o supreme_a alone_o some_o visible_a honour_n due_a unto_o god_n alone_o sovereign_n by_o all_o man_n which_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n thereby_o public_o to_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o their_o god_n and_o to_o practice_v together_o their_o submission_n and_o obedience_n unto_o he_o and_o visible_o to_o adore_v he_o with_o that_o divine_a worship_n with_o be_v due_a only_a unto_o he_o which_o honour_n and_o worship_n under_o penalty_n of_o treason_n against_o his_o divine_a majesty_n and_o temporal_a and_o eternal_a death_n may_v not_o be_v give_v unto_o any_o creature_n subject_a or_o vassal_n of_o he_o otherwise_o there_o shall_v be_v less_o providence_n use_v in_o provide_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o visible_a public_a honour_n worship_n and_o dignity_n of_o god_n among_o man_n than_o there_o be_v for_o the_o mean_a king_n prince_n or_o public_a governor_n of_o any_o private_a city_n upon_o earth_n which_o be_v absurd_a whereupon_o we_o infer_v that_o there_o be_v a_o particular_a exterior_a visible_a know_a sign_n whereby_o man_n do_v or_o ought_v public_o and_o visible_o to_o acknowleg_n god_n for_o their_o lord_n god_n and_o chief_a good_a and_o public_o and_o visible_o preserve_v in_o they_o the_o honour_n dignity_n and_o respect_n which_o be_v due_a only_a unto_o he_o as_o their_o lord_n god_n creator_n conserver_n and_o happy_a life_n etc._n etc._n 2._o that_o this_o particular_a external_a visible_a know_a sign_n be_v the_o visible_a sacrifice_n i_o speak_v of_o which_o s._n augustine_n describe_v to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n or_o sacred_a god_n sacrifice_n be_v only_o due_a unto_o god_n visible_a sign_n of_o the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n as_o be_v set_v down_o in_o our_o first_o chapter_n god_n himself_o do_v witness_v say_v he_o that_o sacrifice_v to_o god_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n but_o to_o our_o lord_n only_o exod._n 22._o 20._o for_o which_o cause_n s._n paul_n reprehend_v the_o gentile_n for_o their_o idolatry_n say_v they_o change_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o incorruptible_a god_n rom._n 1._o 23._o and_o how_o do_v they_o change_v it_o by_o take_v away_o the_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v only_o due_a unto_o god_n as_o a_o sacred_a visible_a
our_o lord_n god_n and_o maintain_v our_o union_n and_o society_n with_o he_o and_o among_o ourselves_o and_o antichrist_n at_o his_o come_n as_o s._n paul_n faith_n shall_v exalt_v himself_o sacrifice_n antichrist_n shall_v take_v away_o public_a sacrifice_n above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n or_o that_o be_v worship_v so_o that_o he_o shall_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n show_v himself_o as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n 2._o thes_n 2._o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o antechrist_n shall_v not_o only_o as_o our_o saviour_n foretell_v in_o the_o 24._o of_o matthew_n and_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n in_o the_o 9_o and_o 12._o chapter_n of_o his_o prophecy_n take_v away_o the_o offering_z of_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o the_o true_a god_n but_o also_o from_o all_o idol_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n public_o offer_v unto_o any_o idol_n or_o devil_n but_o unto_o he_o only_o who_o will_v secret_o worship_v the_o devil_n mahuzim_n daniel_n 11._o and_o so_o he_o shall_v public_o exalt_v himself_o as_o the_o scripture_n say_v above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n or_o that_o be_v public_o worship_v whereupon_o s._n ireneus_fw-la in_o his_o first_o book_n against_o heresy_n and_o 25._o chapter_n say_v he_o shall_v put_v down_o idol_n to_o persuade_v other_o that_o he_o be_v god_n and_o to_o magnify_v himself_o who_o will_v be_v a_o idol_n that_o will_v have_v in_o it_o the_o diverse_a error_n of_o all_o other_o idol_n 12._o moreover_o s._n ireneus_fw-la speak_v of_o the_o cruelty_n fly_v in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n the_o faithful_a who_o offer_v sacrifice_n shall_v be_v force_v to_o fly_v of_o antichrist_n in_o put_v down_o the_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o heresy_n and_o 25._o chapter_n say_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o tyranny_n of_o antichrist_n the_o saint_n who_o offer_v pure_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n shall_v be_v force_v to_o fly_v away_o and_o in_o the_o half_a of_o the_o week_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o host_n and_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n shall_v be_v unto_o the_o consummation_n of_o time_n with_o who_o also_o agree_v hippolytus_n the_o martyr_n a_o ancient_a father_n who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 220._o after_o the_o nativity_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n say_v in_o the_o time_n antichrist_n the_o mourning_n of_o the_o church_n after_o sacrifice_n be_v take_v away_v by_o antichrist_n of_o antichrist_n the_o church_n shall_v mourn_v with_o great_a sorrow_n because_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o it_o neither_o oblation_n nor_o offering_n nor_o incense_n nor_o worship_n grateful_a unto_o god_n but_o the_o sacred_a church_n shall_v be_v like_o cottage_n the_o pretions_n body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v extant_a in_o those_o day_n the_o liturgy_n or_o mass_n shall_v be_v put_v down_o sing_v of_o psalm_n shall_v cease_v and_o read_v the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o 13._o and_o the_o like_a affirm_v s._n ephrem_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o antichrist_n sa_v before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n at_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n shall_v mourn_v with_o great_a sorrow_n for_o that_o the_o divine_a oblation_n and_o sanctification_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o offer_v to_o god_n then_o antichrist_n sacrifice_n to_o cease_v in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n the_o holy_a mystery_n of_o priesthood_n shall_v cease_v after_o three_o time_n and_o a_o half_a shall_v be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o power_n and_o work_v of_o the_o wicked_a antichrist_n and_o all_o scandal_n of_o the_o world_n benig_v consume_v as_o our_o saviour_n speak_v by_o his_o own_o proper_a mouth_n then_o shall_v come_v the_o late_a day_n so_o s._n ephren_n who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 370._o after_o the_o nativity_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o with_o these_o aforesaid_a father_n agree_v s._n chrisostom_n in_o his_o 49._o homily_n upon_o s_n mattew_n say_v for_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a the_o sacrifice_n of_o christian_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o by_o antichrist_n the_o christian_n fly_v from_o he_o into_o the_o desert_n there_o shall_v be_v none_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o church_n or_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o god_n s._n hierome_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 9_o of_o daniel_n be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n say_v hippolytus_n put_v the_o last_o week_n in_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n whereof_o it_o be_v say_v god_n will_v confirm_v the_o covenant_n one_o week_n unto_o many_o and_o in_o the_o other_o three_o year_n under_o antichrist_n the_o host_n and_o sacrifice_n shall_v cease_v thus_o those_o father_n of_o the_o extirpation_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n by_o antichrist_n 14._o now_o see_v that_o antichrist_n at_o his_o come_n as_o both_o scripture_n and_o father_n do_v testify_v shall_v put_v down_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o for_o a_o time_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n public_o offer_v to_o god_n upon_o earth_n and_o that_o antichrist_n be_v not_o to_o come_v until_o half_a antichrist_n be_v to_o reign_v three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o witness_v our_o savouir_n in_o the_o 24._o of_o s._n matthew_n and_z dan._n 7._o and_o to_o reign_v but_o three_o year_n and_o a_o half_a before_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n as_o affirm_v the_o aforesaid_a hippolytus_n in_o his_o say_a book_n of_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n s._n ireneus_fw-la in_o his_o 5._o book_n against_o heresy_n towards_o the_o end_n s._n hierome_n upon_o the_o 7._o chapter_n of_o daniel_n s._n cyril_n in_o his_o 25._o catechesis_fw-la and_o s._n augustin_n in_o the_o 23._o chapter_n of_o his_o ten_o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n and_o other_o it_o be_v manifest_a end_v visible_a sacrifice_n take_v away_v the_o world_n shall_v end_v that_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n shall_v be_v offeto_o god_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o it_o be_v whole_o take_v away_o which_o be_v only_o chief_o and_o above_o all_o thing_n due_a unto_o god_n then_o shall_v come_v the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n by_o fire_n which_o shall_v burn_v and_o destroy_v all_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v upon_o earth_n man_n cease_v to_o honour_n god_n with_o that_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a only_a unto_o he_o as_o he_o be_v god_n and_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n god_n will_v destroy_v man_n out_o of_o the_o face_n earth_n and_o all_o thing_n else_o which_o upon_o earth_n he_o create_v for_o man_n so_o those_o who_o deny_v and_o persecute_v the_o offering_n torment_n those_o who_o deny_v sacrifice_n hasten_v their_o own_o torment_n up_o of_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n do_v but_o hasten_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o everlasting_a damnation_n of_o their_o own_o soul_n and_o body_n to_o the_o verify_n of_o the_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n the_o sinner_n be_v take_v in_o the_o work_n of_o his_o own_o hand_n psal_n 9_o 17._o he_o be_v fall_v into_o the_o pit_n which_o he_o make_v psal_n 7._o 16._o and_o so_o do_v but_o as_o say_v the_o apostle_n heap_n to_o himself_o wrath_n in_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n rom._n 2._o 5._o which_o our_o saviour_n himself_o also_o further_o signify_v say_v the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v give_v be_v my_o flesh_n for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n joh._n 6._o 51._o as_o when_o the_o life_n of_o a_o man_n be_v quite_o take_v from_o his_o body_n the_o body_n die_v and_o by_o degree_n return_v unto_o that_o which_o it_o be_v in_o his_o first_o creation_n which_o be_v slime_n dust_n and_o ash_n so_o when_o the_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v quite_o take_v away_o for_o which_o god_n spare_v the_o world_n then_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v destroy_v by_o fire_n and_o shall_v return_v to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n when_o god_n create_v heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o the_o earth_n be_v void_a and_o vacant_a a_o darkness_n be_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n gen._n 1._o 1._o and_o shall_v so_o remain_v until_o god_n create_v a_o new_a heaven_n and_o a_o new_a earth_n which_o shall_v stand_v for_o ever_o isa_n 65._o 17._o isa_n 66._o 22._o chap._n viii_o the_o reason_n why_o our_o saviour_n will_v not_o take_v away_o visible_a sacrifice_n out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o establish_v it_o in_o better_a term_n first_o for_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o work_n of_o antichrist_n sacrifice_n antichrist_n shall_v take_v away_o sacrifice_n to_o put_v down_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n as_o
common_a people_n and_o not_o to_o displease_v the_o athenian_n as_o witness_v cicero_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o end_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a of_o tusculan_n quest_n and_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o god_n and_o plutark_o in_o his_o book_n against_o coletes_n a_o epicure_n wherefore_o see_v that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n impossible_a and_o altogether_o incredible_a that_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v quite_o take_v away_o the_o offering_n of_o external_a visible_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n for_o the_o good_a of_o those_o who_o be_v deceive_v to_o the_o violate_v of_o religion_n contempt_n of_o god_n and_o damnation_n of_o their_o poor_a soul_n it_o will_v be_v worth_a our_o labour_n yet_o more_o exact_o to_o handle_v this_o matter_n and_o seek_v out_o how_o and_o what_o visible_a sacrifice_n our_o saviour_n appoint_v for_o his_o follower_n to_o use_v in_o his_o church_n upon_o earth_n which_o by_o god_n grace_n i_o will_v do_v in_o the_o ensue_a chapter_n chap._n ix_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o be_v a_o chief_a priest_n of_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o to_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 1._o the_o prophet_n david_n speak_v of_o the_o priesthood_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o 109._o psal_n and_o 4._o ver._n according_a unto_o our_o account_n earth_n christ_n priest_n hood_n forever_o of_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v upon_o earth_n and_o 110._o according_a to_o the_o account_n of_o protestant_n and_o puritan_n say_v our_o lord_n have_v swear_v and_o it_o shall_v not_o repent_v he_o thou_o be_v a_o priest_n forever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n this_o to_o be_v speak_v of_o our_o saviour_n s._n paul_n witness_v heb._n 5._o 6._o 10._o heb._n 6._o 20._o so_o here_o we_o have_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o be_v a_o priest_n not_o for_o once_o or_o for_o a_o little_a while_n as_o upon_o the_o cross_n but_o as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n shall_v last_v until_o eternity_n come_v or_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v until_o christ_n shall_v come_v to_o judgement_n 1._o cor._n 11._o 26._o for_o these_o word_n forever_o everlasting_a be_v many_o time_n take_v for_o as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n shall_v last_v or_o for_o a_o long_a time_n as_o levit._n 25._o 46._o exod._n 15._o 18._o exod._n 21._o 6._o exo._n 31._o 16._o levit._fw-la 23._o 31._o eze._n 26._o 21._o and_o s._n hierome_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 26._o of_o ezechiel_n and_o 21._o ver._n and_o upon_o the_o first_o to_o the_o gall_n and_o 4._o ver._n affirm_v that_o the_o hebrew_n word_n leolam_n which_o be_v here_o translate_v forever_o do_v not_o signify_v the_o eternity_n of_o the_o other_o life_n but_o the_o whole_a time_n of_o this_o life_n or_o as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n shall_v endure_v etc._n etc._n 2._o the_o end_n and_o use_v of_o priesthood_n and_o offer_v sacrifice_n the_o use_n of_o priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n up_o of_o sacrifice_n be_v as_o s._n paul_n say_v heb._n 5._o 1._o to_o obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n but_o after_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o end_n of_o this_o world_n there_o will_v be_v no_o more_o any_o remission_n of_o sin_n wherefore_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v a_o priest_n forever_o in_o the_o other_o world_n of_o eternity_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n see_v that_o in_o the_o eternity_n of_o the_o other_o life_n there_o be_v no_o remission_n of_o sin_n or_o use_v of_o priesthood_n or_o sacrifice_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n which_o s._n paul_n further_a signifi_v say_v where_o there_o be_v no_o remession_n of_o sin_n as_o in_o the_o eternity_n of_o the_o other_o life_n now_o there_o be_v not_o a_o oblation_n for_o sin_n heb._n 10._o 18._o again_o s._n paul_n sayith_n every_o high_a priest_n be_v appoint_v that_o he_o may_v offer_v gift_n and_o host_n wherefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o also_o have_v something_o that_o he_o may_v offer_v heb._n 8._o 3._o but_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o say_v that_o christ_n in_o heaven_n offer_v sacrifice_n host_n or_o gift_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n see_v that_o in_o heaven_n earthly_a sacrament_n and_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v represent_v under_o outward_a corruptible_a material_a sign_n do_v cease_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o imperfection_n for_o in_o heaven_n be_v no_o imperfection_n 1._o cor._n 13._o 10._o 3._o and_o s._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o priesthood_n of_o our_o saviour_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n say_v if_o then_o consummation_n be_v by_o the_o leviticall_a priesthood_n what_o necessity_n be_v there_o yet_o of_o a_o other_o aaron_n christ_n a_o priest_n of_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o not_o of_o aaron_n priest_n to_o rise_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o mechisedech_n and_o not_o to_o be_v call_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n for_o the_o priesthood_n be_v translate_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o a_o translation_n of_o the_o law_n also_o be_v make_v for_o christ_n of_o who_o these_o thing_n be_v say_v be_v of_o another_o tribe_n of_o the_o which_o none_o attend_v on_o the_o altar_n heb._n 7._o 11._o where_o we_o earth_n chriests_n priesthood_n to_o be_v perform_v on_o earth_n see_v that_o our_o saviour_n priesthood_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v upon_o earth_n as_o the_o priesthood_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n be_v perform_v upon_o earth_n and_o the_o law_n be_v translate_v upon_o earth_n and_o the_o tribe_n and_o altar_n be_v upon_o earth_n 4._o neither_o can_v this_o prophecy_n be_v understand_v of_o cross_n this_o prophecy_n not_o understand_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n our_o saviour_n sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n for_o that_o be_v but_o once_o offer_v heb._n 10._o 10._o and_o if_o the_o scripture_n here_o shall_v speak_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n it_o shall_v say_v thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o once_o and_o not_o say_v thou_o be_v a_o priest_n forever_o second_o s._n paul_n say_v other_o priest_n by_o death_n be_v prohibit_v to_o continue_v but_o christ_n for_o that_o he_o continue_v forever_o have_v a_o everlasting_a priesthood_n heb._n 7._o 23._o but_o as_o our_o saviour_n offer_v himself_o in_o sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n he_o be_v neither_o everlasting_a nor_o immortal_a but_o mortal_a and_o dye_v and_o therefore_o as_o he_o be_v offer_v upon_o the_o cross_n he_o be_v by_o death_n prohibit_v to_o continue_v aswell_o as_o other_o priest_n wherefore_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o christ_n be_v a_o priest_n forever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n because_o he_o offer_v himself_o upon_o the_o cross_n 5._o the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o saviour_n upon_o the_o cross_n be_v bloody_a and_o rather_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n then_o melchisedech_n of_o which_o order_n our_o saviour_n be_v not_o as_o s._n paul_n witness_v say_v christ_n aron_n our_o saviour_n be_v not_o a_o priest_n of_o the_o order_n of_o aron_n be_v not_o call_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n heb._n 7._o 11._o wherefore_o see_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o be_v a_o priest_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n unto_o god_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o there_o neither_o be_v nor_o have_v be_v any_o other_o sacrifice_n offer_v in_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o that_o which_o among_o christian_n lord_n no_o sacrifice_n among_o christian_n but_o that_o of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v call_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n service_n book_n history_n chronicle_n and_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a time_n bear_v witness_n what_o christian_n man_n can_v deny_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o be_v a_o priest_n forever_o to_o offer_v this_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n by_o himself_o his_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o this_o oath_n of_o god_n be_v fulfil_v in_o offer_v or_o give_v to_o god_n his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n according_a to_o his_o command_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n when_o take_v bread_n he_o give_v thanks_o and_o break_v and_o give_v to_o the_o apostle_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o to_o god_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o chalice_n after_o he_o have_v sup_v say_v this_o be_v the_o chalice_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o to_o god_n luc._n 22._o do_v this_o the_o same_o which_o he_o then_o
four_o he_o change_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o his_o substantial_a body_n say_v of_o that_o with_o be_v bread_n when_o he_o take_v it_o first_o into_o his_o hand_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o so_o make_v a_o change_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n into_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n as_o i_o shall_v prove_v more_o at_o large_a here_o after_o to_o show_v the_o power_n and_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n who_o can_v change_v and_o alter_v thing_n create_v at_o his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n which_o ostension_n of_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v use_v in_o all_o sacrifice_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n and_o last_o he_o give_v his_o body_n for_o a_o gift_n to_o god_n for_o we_o thereby_o to_o signify_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o our_o subjection_n unto_o he_o and_o his_o dominion_n over_o we_o as_o be_v use_v in_o particular_a external_a visible_a sacrifice_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o luk._n 22._o by_o which_o word_n it_o be_v plain_a and_o manifest_a that_o the_o body_n which_o our_o saviour_n deliver_v in_o the_o communion_n to_o the_o apostle_n be_v a_o particular_a gift_n and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n give_v to_o god_n for_o we_o to_o signify_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n etc._n etc._n 10._o in_o like_a manner_n our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n take_v wine_n which_o also_o be_v use_v in_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_v of_o gift_n as_o witness_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o melchisedech_n gen._n 13._o and_o after_o bless_v it_o as_o witness_v s._n paul_n 1._o cor._n 10._o so_o that_o it_o be_v holy_a and_o consecrate_a wine_n to_o god_n as_o be_v the_o wine_n of_o all_o sacrifice_n and_o change_v the_o substance_n of_o that_o which_o before_o be_v wine_n into_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o blood_n say_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n math._n 26._o 28._o to_o show_v the_o omnipotent_a power_n of_o god_n who_o be_v able_a to_o alter_v and_o change_v all_o thing_n create_v at_o his_o will_n and_o pleasure_n which_o alteration_n by_o some_o change_n of_o the_o thing_n offer_v be_v use_v in_o all_o sacrifice_n and_o last_o to_o shed_v his_o blood_n to_o god_n for_o we_o thereby_o to_o signify_v the_o invisible_a contrition_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o his_o dominion_n over_o we_o and_o our_o subjection_n unto_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o luk._n 22._o not_o after_o a_o carnal_a or_o cruel_a manner_n but_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o gift_n clean_a oblation_n and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n as_o witness_v the_o practice_n and_o experience_n of_o all_o age_n no_o christian_a catholic_n man_n ever_o affirm_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n shed_v his_o blood_n after_o a_o carnal_a cruel_a manner_n but_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o gift_n and_o clean_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o prophecy_n cite_v before_o in_o the_o 8._o and_o 10._o chapter_n 11._o our_o adversary_n confess_v that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n administer_v the_o communion_n unto_o the_o apostle_n and_o it_o be_v never_o read_v of_o any_o sect_n or_o sort_n of_o people_n in_o former_a age_n that_o they_o communicate_v together_o and_o not_o of_o meat_n offer_v in_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n except_o the_o epicure_n and_o atheist_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o 6._o chapter_n of_o this_o book_n wherefore_o see_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n administer_v the_o holy_a communion_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o he_o offer_v first_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o meat_n which_o he_o deliver_v in_o the_o communion_n before_o he_o deliver_v it_o and_o bloody_a sacrifice_n be_v to_o cease_v in_o the_o new_a law_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n of_o gift_n and_o administer_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o same_o and_o that_o these_o gift_n or_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n be_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n see_v he_o in_o plain_a and_o express_v term_n say_v of_o they_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o luk_n 22._o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o 1._o cor._n 11._o this_o be_v my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o luk._n 22._o 12._o and_o after_o that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n have_v offer_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n or_o a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o have_v communicate_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o same_o he_o present_o by_o a_o express_a command_n establish_v the_o say_a kind_n of_o sacrifice_n in_o his_o church_n for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o he_o say_v do_v this_o the_o same_o which_o he_o then_o do_v for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o luk_n 22_o and_o this_o do_v you_o for_o the_o commemoration_n of_o i_o 1._o cor._n 11._o 24._o whereupon_o the_o catholic_a anciens_fw-fr father_n believe_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o therefore_o sometime_o call_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n gift_n sometime_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n as_o all_o one_o thing_n as_o i_o will_v show_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o next_o chapter_n chap._n xii_o the_o ancient_a father_n believe_v that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o establish_v the_o same_o in_o his_o church_n 1._o first_o all_o the_o catholic_n ancient_a father_n be_v priest_n the_o father_n bishop_n or_o priest_n either_o bishop_n or_o priest_n or_o both_o and_o either_o daily_a or_o often_o use_v and_o practise_v liturgy_n or_o public_a church_n service_n book_n which_o teach_v the_o offering_n of_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o their_o church_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o the_o protestant_n bishop_n and_o minister_n of_o england_n use_v the_o book_n of_o the_o order_n for_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o their_o church_n so_o they_o can_v not_o but_o believe_v and_o teach_v that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o sacrifice_n no_o ancient_a book_n of_o the_o administation_n of_o the_o communion_n but_o teach_v unbloodie_a sacrifice_n blood_n and_o establish_v the_o same_o in_o his_o church_n unless_o our_o adversary_n will_v make_v they_o atheist_n and_o hypocrite_n to_o say_v and_o do_v one_o thing_n and_o believe_v another_o for_o there_o neither_o be_v nor_o ever_o be_v before_o the_o rebellion_n of_o luther_n among_o any_o sect_n or_o sort_n of_o christian_n repute_v heretic_n to_o both_o party_n only_o except_v any_o book_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n but_o those_o which_o teach_v how_o to_o offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o how_o to_o administer_v the_o communion_n in_o the_o same_o 2._o this_o be_v first_o manifest_v by_o the_o practice_n and_o proceed_v of_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o invention_n protestant_n bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v new_a invention_n who_o when_o they_o do_v resolve_v in_o the_o 2._o year_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o sixth_o a_o child_n to_o forsake_v the_o catholic_a religion_n and_o faith_n in_o this_o point_n and_o to_o have_v a_o religion_n wherein_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o offering_n of_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o priest_n or_o altar_n can_v not_o find_v before_o the_o time_n of_o the_o rebellion_n of_o luther_n any_o one_o bishop_n or_o priest_n who_o have_v take_v such_o order_n or_o be_v ordain_v a_o bishop_n or_o priest_n of_o such_o a_o religion_n know_v and_o repute_v heretic_n to_o both_o party_n only_o except_v by_o who_o they_o can_v or_o may_v have_v such_o bishop_n and_o priest_n make_v nor_o yet_o any_o book_n in_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n in_o the_o age_n before_o luther_n where_o in_o they_o may_v or_o can_v find_v the_o form_n or_o manner_n of_o make_v and_o consecrate_v such_o kind_n of_o bishop_n or_o priest_n but_o see_v they_o will_v needs_o have_v such_o a_o kind_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o religion_n they_o be_v force_v to_o invent_v a_o new_a form_n and_o manner_n of_o make_v and_o consecrate_v bishop_n and_o priest_n conformable_a unto_o their_o desire_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o book_n entitle_v the_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o make_v and_o consecrate_v bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n 3._o and_o this_o
their_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o make_v those_o their_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n be_v so_o dissonant_n from_o all_o the_o manner_n and_o form_n use_v before_o the_o rebellion_n of_o luther_n that_o in_o the_o 36._o article_n of_o their_o own_o religion_n establish_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n they_o confess_v that_o this_o their_o say_a book_n be_v a_o book_n late_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o time_n of_o edward_n the_o fix_a and_o confirm_v at_o the_o same_o time_n by_o authority_n of_o parliament_n and_o never_o before_o either_o invention_n the_o make_n of_o protestat_fw-la clergy_n a_o late_a invention_n set_v forth_o or_o confirm_v by_o any_o council_n or_o parliament_n but_o then_o divise_v as_o witness_v the_o statute_n itself_o of_o the_o 3_o and_o 4_o year_n of_o edward_n the_o sixth_o in_o the_o 12_o act_n saying_n be_v it_o enact_v by_o the_o king_n highness_n etc._n etc._n that_o such_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o make_v sixth_o protestant_n clergy_n devise_v in_o the_o time_n of_o edward_n the_o sixth_o and_o consecrate_v of_o archbishop_n bishop_n priest_n deacon_n and_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n as_o by_o six_o other_o man_n of_o this_o realm_n learn_v in_o god_n law_n by_o the_o king_n majesty_n to_o be_v appoint_v and_o assign_v or_o by_o the_o most_o number_n of_o they_o shall_v be_v devise_v for_o that_o purpose_n and_o set_v forth_o under_o the_o great_a seal_n of_o england_n before_o the_o first_o day_n of_o april_n next_o come_v shall_v by_o virtue_n of_o this_o act_n be_v lawful_o exercise_v and_o use_v and_o none_o other_o any_o other_o statute_n law_n or_o usage_n to_o the_o contrary_a in_o any_o wise_n notwithstanding_o thus_o this_o statute_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o before_o the_o time_n of_o edward_n the_o sixth_o all_o the_o archbishop_n bishop_n priests_z etc._n etc._n be_v so_o ordain_v to_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o our_o adversaire_n can_v not_o find_v a_o form_n or_o manner_n of_o make_v archbishop_n bishop_n priest_n and_o who_o shall_v not_o offer_v unbloody_a sacrifice_n but_o be_v force_v to_o invent_v and_o devise_v as_o the_o statute_n say_v a_o new_a one_o and_o this_o so_o contrary_a to_o the_o 3._o creed_n and_o promise_n of_o god_n unto_o his_o church_n that_o thomas_n rogers_n a_o protestant_a glosser_n upon_o the_o article_n of_o their_o religion_n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v the_o english_a creed_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 36._o article_n ingenious_o catholic_n the_o protestant_a clergy_n no_o catholic_n confess_v that_o this_o article_n of_o the_o consecration_n of_o protestant_a archbishop_n bishop_n priest_n &c._n &c._n be_v no_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o a_o thing_n no_o where_o to_o be_v find_v among_o catholic_a christian_n but_o then_o devise_v by_o protestant_n 4._o and_o after_o that_o they_o have_v devise_v a_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o make_v archbishop_n bishop_n priests_z &c_n &c_n who_o shall_v not_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o all_o the_o age_n before_o luther_n except_o only_o know_v and_o repute_v heretic_n atheist_n and_o epicure_n to_o both_o party_n they_o can_v not_o find_v a_o book_n where_o the_o office_n of_o these_o kind_n of_o man_n be_v set_v down_o without_o offer_v of_o sacrifice_n but_o be_v also_o force_v to_o invent_v a_o new_a book_n of_o office_n for_o their_o say_a bishop_n and_o priest_n called_z the_o order_n for_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n never_o hear_v of_o to_o have_v be_v use_v among_o any_o sort_n of_o man_n before_o luther_n except_o above_o except_v as_o witness_v the_o say_a book_n or_o order_n for_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n set_v down_o in_o the_o end_n of_o their_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n and_o the_o statute_n of_o the_o 5._o and_o 6._o year_n of_o edward_n the_o sixth_o and_o first_o year_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o experience_n itself_o our_o adversary_n not_o be_v able_a to_o find_v any_o such_o book_n set_v forth_o for_o the_o administration_n of_o any_o lord_n supper_n among_o any_o sect_n or_o sort_n of_o man_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n until_o the_o rebellion_n of_o luther_n know_v and_o repute_v heretic_n atheist_n and_o epicure_n to_o both_o party_n only_o except_v 5._o the_o apostle_n themselves_o believe_v that_o our_o lord_n ordain_v they_o bishop_n and_o priest_n to_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o apostle_n the_o form_n of_o make_v bishop_n and_o priest_n set_v dwne_v by_o the_o apostle_n he_o set_v forth_o also_o a_o form_n or_o manner_n of_o consecrate_v other_o bishop_n and_o priest_n to_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o he_o in_o the_o 8._o book_n of_o their_o constitution_n where_o in_o the_o consecration_n of_o a_o bishop_n the_o consecrator_n say_v give_v unto_o he_o that_o be_v consecrate_v o_o allmightie_a lord_n by_o thy_o christ_n the_o participation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o he_o may_v have_v power_n to_o remit_v sin_n according_a to_o thy_o command_n and_o of_o lose_v all_o band_n according_a to_o the_o power_n which_o thou_o have_v give_v unto_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o please_v thou_o in_o meekness_n and_o purity_n of_o heart_n by_o offer_v unto_o thou_o always_o without_o fault_n and_o without_o sin_n a_o pure_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n which_o by_o christ_n thou_o have_v establish_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o a_o fragrant_a smell_n of_o sweetness_n for_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n of_o their_o say_a book_n the_o only_o beget_v christ_n do_v not_o take_v this_o honour_n to_o himself_o but_o be_v institute_v a_o chief_a priest_n by_o his_o father_n who_o be_v make_v man_n for_o our_o sake_n and_o offer_v a_o spiritual_a host_n his_o spiritual_a body_n to_o his_o god_n and_o father_n before_o his_o passion_n and_o ordain_v we_o only_o that_o we_o shall_v do_v the_o same_o when_o there_o be_v other_o with_o we_o whereof_o some_o also_o believe_v in_o he_o but_o whosoever_o do_v believe_v be_v not_o forth_o with_o make_v a_o priest_n or_o obtain_v the_o degree_n of_o episcopal_a dignity_n and_o we_o offer_v a_o pure_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n as_o our_o lord_n ordain_v have_v choose_v bishop_n &_o priest_n and_o seven_o deacon_n thus_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o constitution_n and_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o their_o authenticalnes_n i_o refer_v you_o to_o the_o preface_n of_o franciscus_n turrianus_n set_v before_o they_o the_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o make_v or_o consecrate_v bishop_n and_o priest_n thus_o establish_v there_o be_v never_o any_o catholic_n priest_n ordain_v who_o be_v not_o ordain_v to_o offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_v of_o gift_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o witness_v all_o the_o pontifical_o or_o book_n set_v forth_o for_o the_o ordain_v of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n nor_o ever_o a_o catholic_a bishop_n or_o priest_n who_o have_v not_o for_o office_n the_o offering_n of_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_v of_o gift_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n whereupon_o s._n basill_n bishop_n of_o capadocia_n as_o witness_v amphilochius_n in_o his_o life_n desire_v of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v give_v he_o wisdom_n and_o understanding_n to_o write_v a_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church-seruice_n book_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n wherein_o he_o may_v offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n and_o continue_v in_o his_o prayer_n our_o lord_n appear_v unto_o he_o in_o a_o vision_n and_o say_v according_a to_o thy_o petition_n let_v thy_o mouth_n be_v fill_v with_o praise_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o by_o thy_o proper_a word_n thou_o may_v offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n again_o in_o his_o anaphora_fw-la he_o pray_v say_v thou_o o_o lord_n make_v we_o worthy_a that_o we_o may_v stand_v before_o thou_o with_o a_o pure_a heart_n and_o minister_n unto_o thou_o and_o may_v offer_v unto_o thou_o this_o reverend_a and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n 6_o so_o likewise_o s._n chrisostome_n bishop_n of_o constantinopole_n not_o only_o in_o his_o liturgy_n pray_v unto_o god_n that_o he_o may_v assist_v at_o his_o fearful_a sanctuary_n and_o finish_v the_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n without_o offence_n but_o also_o affirm_v that_o christ_n as_o lord_n of_o all_o have_v deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o celebration_n of_o this_o solemn_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n and_o sometime_o call_v it_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n sometime_o gift_n which_o be_v so_o extend_v all_o over_o that_o world_n in_o his_o time_n that_o in_o his_o homily_n upon_o the_o 95._o psal_n he_o say_v in_o
every_o place_n there_o be_v altar_n as_o god_n foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n malachi_n for_o express_v the_o ecclesiastical_a sincerity_n of_o the_o new_a law_n and_o lay_v open_a the_o ingratitude_n of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o old_a law_n he_o say_v unto_o they_o i_o have_v no_o will_n in_o you_o say_v the_o lord_n omnipotent_a and_o host_n i_o will_v not_o receive_v at_o your_o hand_n for_o from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n unto_o the_o go_v down_o my_o name_n be_v glorify_v among_o the_o gentile_n and_o in_o every_o place_n sacrifice_n be_v offer_v unto_o my_o name_n and_o a_o pure_a sacifice_n see_v how_o plain_o how_o manifest_o he_o have_v set_v forth_o that_o mystical_a table_n which_o be_v the_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n the_o pure_a sacrifice_n be_v certain_o the_o chief_a mystical_a table_n the_o heavenly_a and_o most_o venerable_a host_n so_o s_n chrysostome_n 7._o in_o like_a manner_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n liturgy_n the_o ancient_a father_n agree_v able_a to_o the_o ancient_a liturgy_n do_v also_o call_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n somctimes_o gift_n and_o sometime_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n as_o s._n dionysius_n areopagita_n in_o the_o 5._o chapter_n of_o his_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n say_v the_o bishop_n after_o that_o he_o have_v show_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o divine_a work_n come_v to_o communicate_v they_o himself_o and_o also_o invit_v other_o again_o the_o bishop_n do_v show_v the_o cover_a gift_n and_o that_o which_o in_o they_o be_v one_o he_o divide_v gift_n vnbloudie_a sacrifice_n call_v gift_n into_o many_o s._n clement_n in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n of_o his_o 8._o book_n of_o constitution_n speak_v of_o the_o sacred_a host_n after_o consecration_n say_v we_o beseech_v thou_o o_o lord_n favorablie_o to_o look_v upon_o these_o gift_n set_v before_o thou_o and_o in_o the_o 13._o chapter_n he_o earnest_o beseech_v god_n to_o receive_v the_o say_v gift_n offer_v for_o all_o bishop_n priest_n king_n and_o the_o people_n there_o present_a and_o the_o whole_a church_n theodoret_n in_o his_o 2._o dialogue_n say_v what_o do_v you_o call_v the_o gift_n which_o be_v bring_v before_o the_o invocation_n of_o the_o priest_n answer_v it_o be_v make_v of_o such_o like_a seed_n and_o after_o the_o sanctification_n how_o do_v you_o call_v those_o thing_n answer_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n 8._o s._n ireneus_fw-la in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o heresy_n say_v christ_n teach_v the_o new_a oblation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o the_o church_n receive_v testament_n gift_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n from_o the_o apostle_n offer_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o god_n who_o give_v we_o for_o nourishment_n the_o first_o fruit_n of_o his_o gift_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n so_o likewise_o the_o 318._o father_n in_o the_o first_o general_n great_a council_n of_o nice_a in_o the_o 5._o cannon_n according_a to_o the_o greek_a copy_n call_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n a_o most_o pure_a gift_n offer_v to_o god_n where_o we_o may_v observe_v that_o those_o ancient_a father_n do_v call_v the_o sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n gift_n of_o the_o divine_a work_n and_o a_o most_o pure_a gift_n before_o they_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o communion_n as_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n independent_a of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o receiver_n 9_o and_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o ancient_a father_n do_v call_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n a_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n as_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n in_o the_o 10._o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n of_o evangelicall_a demonstration_n say_v we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o most_o high_a priest_n of_o all_o to_o offer_v unto_o the_o supreme_a god_n throughout_o our_o whole_a life_n unbloudie_a and_o reasonable_a victim_n sweet_a unto_o he_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n in_o his_o first_o oration_n sacrifice_n julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la hate_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n against_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la show_v the_o aversion_n which_o this_o apostata_fw-la have_v from_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n say_v he_o profane_v his_o hand_n that_o he_o may_v wash_v they_o from_o the_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n by_o which_o we_o communicate_v christ_n and_o his_o suffering_n and_o divinity_n 10._o s._n cyrillus_n alexandrinus_n in_o declaratione_fw-la anathematismi_fw-la 11._o say_v we_o offer_v the_o holy_a quicken_n and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n believe_v the_o body_n and_o precious_a blood_n which_o be_v set_v before_o we_o to_o be_v not_o of_o a_o common_a man_n and_o like_v unto_o we_o but_o of_o the_o word_n again_o in_o his_o book_n the_o adoratione_n in_o spirituli_fw-la 13._o the_o table_n true_o of_o proposition_n have_v bread_n upon_o it_o do_v signify_v our_o unbloudie_a host_n wherewith_o we_o all_o be_v bless_v whilst_o we_o eat_v that_o bread_n which_o be_v from_o heaven_n that_o be_v to_o say_v christ._n 11._o and_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o general_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o so_o universal_o believe_v of_o the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n institute_v a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n clean_a oblation_n or_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o be_v offer_v by_o bishop_n and_o priest_n for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o he_o that_o three_o of_o the_o 4._o first_o general_n counsel_n which_o ever_o be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n call_v the_o eucharist_n or_o thing_n deliver_v in_o the_o communion_n the_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n as_o the_o great_a general_a council_n of_o nice_a which_o be_v the_o first_o general_a council_n which_o ever_o be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n say_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o general_a council_n of_o nice_a they_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o three_o book_n and_o title_n of_o the_o divine_a table_n let_v we_o understand_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v place_v upon_o the_o table_n sacrifice_v after_o a_o unbloudie_a manner_n by_o priest_n 12._o in_o like_a manner_n s._n cirill_n archbishop_n of_o alexandria_n chief_a of_o the_o general_a council_n of_o ephesus_n in_o the_o 26._o epistle_n set_v down_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o same_o council_n write_v after_o this_o manner_n unto_o nestorius_n the_o heretic_n for_o who_o condemnation_n sacrifice_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n they_o offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n that_o council_n be_v call_v say_v i_o can_v omit_v this_o that_o whilst_o we_o declare_v the_o death_n of_o the_o only_o son_n of_o god_n and_o his_o resurrection_n from_o death_n we_o also_o confess_v his_o assumption_n into_o heaven_n and_o celebrate_v the_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n and_o approach_v unto_o the_o mystical_a blessing_n by_o which_o mean_n we_o be_v sanctify_v as_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o holy_a flesh_n and_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ_n the_o saviour_n of_o we_o all_o neither_o do_v we_o receive_v it_o as_o common_a flesh_n god_n forbid_v we_o shall_v do_v so_o nor_o yet_o as_o the_o flesh_n of_o a_o holy_a man_n etc._n etc._n but_o we_o receive_v it_o as_o true_o quicken_a flesh_n and_o as_o proper_a flesh_n of_o the_o word_n it_o self_n which_o be_v incarnate_a thus_o s_n cyrill_n chief_a in_o the_o general_a council_n to_o the_o heretic_n nestorius_n 13._o and_o in_o the_o 4._o general_a council_n which_o crifice_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o counce_v of_o chalcedon_n they_o offer_v unbloudy_a sa_o crifice_n be_v that_o of_o chalcedon_n ischyrion_n deacon_n of_o alexandria_n prefer_v in_o the_o three_o act_n of_o the_o council_n a_o bill_n of_o complaint_n unto_o the_o council_n against_o dioscorus_n archbishop_n of_o alexandria_n a_o wicked_a man_n among_o other_o thing_n accuse_v he_o of_o this_o as_o of_o agreat_a crime_n that_o whereas_o in_o lybia_n for_o the_o sterility_n of_o the_o country_n wheat_n will_v not_o grow_v the_o most_o pious_a emperor_n allow_v wheat_n first_o that_o as_o he_o say_v the_o unbloudie_a host_n may_v be_v offer_v of_o it_o and_o secondlie_o for_o the_o relief_n of_o pilgrim_n and_o the_o poor_a of_o the_o province_n dioscorus_n will_v not_o permit_v the_o holy_a bishop_n of_o the_o country_n to_o receive_v the_o say_a wheat_n but_o will_v forestall_v it_o and_o buy_v it_o up_o with_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n and_o in_o time_n of_o famine_n shall_v it_o again_o at_o most_o dear_a rate_n and_o by_o these_o mean_n neither_o the_o terrible_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n as_o there_o it_o be_v term_v be_v celebrate_v nor_o the_o pelgrim_n or_o poor_a relieve_v thus_o ischyrion_n in_o his_o complaint_n against_o dioscorus_n the_o heretic_n unto_o the_o general_a council_n of_o
chalcedon_n whereby_o it_o be_v sufficient_o manifest_a that_o three_o of_o the_o four_o first_o general_n counsel_n call_v the_o eucharist_n the_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n and_o esteem_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o gift_n unto_o god_n 14._o to_o this_o we_o may_v add_v the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a in_o the_o three_o tcme_n of_o the_o sixth_o section_n say_v nice_a the_o 2._o council_n of_o nice_a none_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o of_o our_o famous_a father_n call_v our_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v donn_v in_o commemoration_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n and_o all_o his_o dispensation_n the_o image_n of_o his_o body_n again_o a_o little_a after_o in_o the_o same_o place_n the_o say_a council_n say_v neither_o our_o lord_n or_o the_o apostle_n or_o father_n ever_o call_v the_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v by_o the_o priest_n a_o image_n or_o sign_n so_o these_o four_o general_a counsel_n whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a unto_o any_o indifferent_a reader_n that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n a_o proper_a and_o special_a visible_a external_a unbloudie_a sacrifice_n and_o ordain_v that_o a_o proper_a and_o special_a visible_a external_a unbloudie_a sacrifice_n represent_v the_o inward_a and_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n shall_v be_v offer_v unto_o god_n in_o his_o church_n by_o bishop_n and_o priste_n thereby_o to_o honour_n god_n with_o divine_a worship_n or_o latria_n only_o due_a to_o he_o make_v commemoration_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n for_o we_o and_o preserve_v peace_n unity_n and_o societiewith_o god_n and_o among_o ourselves_o all_o after_o what_o manner_n our_o saviour_n die_v for_o all_o 15._o for_o though_o our_o saviour_n die_v for_o all_o and_o his_o sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n be_v of_o such_o a_o value_n and_o virtue_n that_o it_o alone_o for_o as_o much_o as_o be_v require_v on_o the_o behalf_n of_o our_o saviour_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o mankind_n be_v sufficient_a to_o redeem_v a_o thousand_o world_n if_o there_o be_v so_o many_o yet_o because_o this_o sacrifice_n of_o redemption_n be_v donn_v but_o once_o and_o neither_o can_v nor_o need_v to_o be_v donn_v any_o more_o and_o our_o saviour_n do_v not_o neither_o be_v it_o convenient_a that_o he_o shall_v so_o redeem_v mankind_n by_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n as_o that_o man_n on_o his_o part_n shall_v have_v nothing_o to_o do_v for_o his_o salvation_n but_o only_o idle_o to_o believe_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o he_o and_o assure_v himself_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v therefore_o he_o ordain_v that_o all_o those_o who_o will_v be_v save_v shall_v not_o only_o believe_v the_o whole_a article_n of_o the_o faith_n which_o he_o plant_v upon_o earth_n s._n john_n say_v in_o his_o second_o epistle_n every_o one_o that_o revolt_v and_o persi_v not_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o god_n but_o also_o that_o they_o shall_v do_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v command_v compare_v the_o rest_n unto_o fool_n say_v every_o one_o that_o hear_v these_o my_o word_n and_o do_v they_o not_o shall_v be_v like_o a_o foolish_a man_n that_o build_v his_o house_n upon_o the_o sand_n matth._n 7._o wherefore_o all_o those_o who_o be_v of_o year_n of_o discretion_n and_o will_v not_o be_v number_v among_o these_o fool_n and_o perish_v eternal_o be_v to_o offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n thereby_o to_o honour_n god_n with_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_n due_a only_o unto_o he_o apply_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n unto_o they_o make_v commemoration_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o fulfil_v his_o command_n for_o as_o our_o saviour_n command_v the_o apostle_n to_o teach_v and_o baptize_v say_v teach_v you_o all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n matth._n 28._o 19_o so_o also_o he_o command_v they_o to_o offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n say_v after_o he_o have_v give_v his_o body_n for_o we_o do_v this_o for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o luk._n 22._o 16._o if_o our_o saviour_n by_o his_o sacrifice_n of_o redemption_n upon_o the_o cross_n shall_v have_v redeem_v all_o virtue_n if_o our_o saviour_n have_v redeem_v all_o man_n with_o out_o do_v any_o thing_n on_o their_o part_n he_o have_v destroy_v all_o moral_a virtue_n man_n absolute_o without_o require_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v donn_v on_o their_o part_n but_o only_o to_o believe_v he_o have_v destroy_v all_o moral_a virtue_n as_o patience_n obedience_n humility_n justice_n fortitude_n temperance_n etc._n etc._n and_o also_o those_o theological_a virtue_n of_o charity_n and_o hope_v and_o have_v be_v a_o mean_n to_o plant_v idleness_n sloth_n sin_n and_o the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n among_o man_n which_o be_v absurd_a see_v that_o as_o s._n john_n say_v for_o this_o appear_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v dissolve_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n 1._o joh._n 3._o 8._o and_o the_o sin_n of_o sloth_n be_v to_o be_v punish_v with_o everlasting_a torment_n matth._n 25._o 26._o and_o this_o be_v sufficieot_n to_o show_v how_o the_o ancient_a father_n believe_v that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o establish_v the_o same_o in_o his_o church_n chap._n xiii_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n before_o luther_n believe_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o establish_v they_o in_o his_o church_n 1._o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n which_o be_v world_n unbloody_a sacrifice_n dilate_v over_o the_o world_n before_o the_o rebellion_n of_o martin_n luther_n believe_v that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_v of_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o establish_v they_o to_o be_v use_v in_o his_o church_n until_o the_o end_n thereof_o as_o witness_v all_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolical_a man_n liturgy_n or_o public_a church_n service_n book_n both_o ancient_a and_o modern_a which_o have_v be_v use_v before_o the_o rebellion_n of_o luther_n in_o any_o country_n province_n city_n or_o parish_n in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n or_o by_o any_o know_a sect_n or_o sort_n of_o man_n know_v and_o repute_v heretic_n to_o both_o party_n only_o except_v all_o which_o book_n be_v make_v chief_o to_o express_v what_o pass_v at_o the_o last_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o to_o retain_v in_o the_o christian_a world_n a_o pious_a memory_n and_o commemoration_n of_o he_o according_a to_o his_o command_n say_v do_v this_o the_o same_o which_o he_o then_o do_v in_o commemoration_n of_o i_o in_o execution_n whereof_o all_o those_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church-seruice-booke_n be_v put_v forth_o either_o by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o or_o apostolical_a man_n as_o witness_v the_o book_n themselves_o unto_o which_o book_n howsoever_o some_o prayer_n name_n of_o saint_n or_o the_o like_a may_v be_v add_v which_o be_v common_o donn_v according_a to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n and_o the_o worthiness_n of_o saintes_n arise_v up_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n yet_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o both_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n and_o all_o christian_n catholic_n man_n in_o this_o point_n of_o the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o expression_n of_o what_o pass_v at_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o b._n sacrtment_n there_o be_v nothing_o add_v of_o moment_n or_o substance_n 2._o and_o this_o do_v appear_v by_o the_o book_n themselves_o sacrifice_n all_o catholic_a public_a church-seruice_n book_n agree_v in_o sacrifice_n which_o though_o they_o have_v be_v disperse_v in_o all_o age_n and_o time_n since_o they_o be_v make_v through_o christendom_n and_o be_v pen_v by_o diverse_a of_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolical_a man_n yet_o in_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n they_o all_o agree_v in_o one_o and_o so_o uniform_o express_v the_o commemoration_n command_v to_o to_o be_v observe_v by_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n by_o divine_a gift_n or_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n as_o though_o they_o have_v all_o in_o this_o point_n be_v pen_v at_o diverse_a time_n by_o one_o man_n and_o use_v in_o one_o city_n or_o church_n which_o can_v never_o have_v be_v if_o any_o of_o the_o say_a book_n have_v in_o this_o point_n be_v corrupt_v for_o to_o corrupt_v they_o all_o in_o those_o mystery_n which_o the_o christian_a catholic_n have_v ever_o esteem_v to_o be_v sacred_a and_o all_o their_o corruption_n to_o agree_v in_o this_o point_n
they_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n daily_o and_o public_o use_v and_o practise_v in_o all_o the_o curche_n of_o christendom_n and_o no_o know_v christian_n catholic_n man_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o such_o a_o general_a corruption_n be_v a_o thing_n impossible_a as_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n in_o thing_n of_o lesser_a moment_n and_o more_o rare_o practise_v and_o of_o mean_a account_n and_o reckon_n neither_o can_v the_o whole_a christian_a catholic_n church_n the_o promise_n of_o god_n unto_o his_o church_n consider_v so_o sudden_o decay_n after_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o in_o all_o christendom_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o know_v public_a practice_n of_o the_o right_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n 3._o and_o if_o we_o look_v in_o to_o the_o first_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church_n service_n book_n which_o be_v make_v jerusalem_n the_o christian_a unbloudie_a sacrifice_n begunn_v at_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n for_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n where_o the_o gospel_n first_o begin_v and_o from_o whence_o it_o be_v to_o be_v spread_v and_o preach_v unto_o all_o nation_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n luck_n 24._o 47._o act._n 1._o 8._o as_o into_o the_o liturgy_n which_o be_v make_v by_o s._n james_n the_o apostle_n for_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n whereof_o he_o be_v institute_v bishop_n by_o the_o apostle_n as_o witness_v eusebius_n in_o the_o 22._o chapter_n of_o his_o 2._o book_n of_o history_n which_o liturgy_n be_v also_o confirm_v to_o be_v his_o by_o the_o 32._o canon_n of_o the_o 6._o general_a council_n by_o proclus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n in_o his_o tradition_n of_o the_o divine_a liturgy_n and_o s._n cirill_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o his_o 5._o catechesis_fw-la both_o which_o live_v above_o 1200._o year_n past_a and_o see_v what_o will_v be_v find_v there_o it_o will_v directe_v we_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n 4._o in_o this_o liturgy_n the_o priest_n say_v lord_n thou_o liturgy_n s._n james_n his_o liturgy_n have_v grant_v that_o we_o shall_v confident_o approach_v unto_o thy_o holy_a altar_n and_o offer_v unto_o thou_o this_o reverend_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n etc._n etc._n let_v it_o please_v thou_o that_o these_o gift_n which_o we_o offer_v with_o our_o hand_n may_v be_v acceptable_a unto_o thou_o etc._n etc._n do_v not_o turn_v away_o from_o we_o sinner_n handle_n tbis_n fearful_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n let_v it_o please_v thou_o o_o lord_n that_o we_o may_v be_v minister_n of_o thy_o new_a testament_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o thy_o immaculate_a mystery_n and_o admit_v we_o approach_v unto_o thy_o holy_a altar_n according_a to_o the_o multitude_n of_o thy_o mercy_n that_o we_o may_v be_v worthy_a who_o will_v offer_v unto_o thou_o gift_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o ourselves_o and_o for_o those_o sin_n which_o the_o people_n have_v commit_v through_o ignorance_n grant_v we_o o_o lord_n that_o we_o may_v offer_v unto_o thou_o with_o all_o fear_n and_o a_o pure_a conscience_n this_o spiritual_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n we_o bend_v our_o knee_n unto_o thy_o goodness_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o o_o lord_n see_v that_o we_o worship_v and_o tremble_v when_o we_o be_v to_o approach_v unto_o tby_o holy_a altar_n to_o offer_v this_o fearful_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n etc._n etc._n we_o offer_v unto_o thou_o this_o venerable_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n send_v upon_o we_o and_o upon_o these_o gift_n thy_o holy_a spirit_n 5._o and_o set_v down_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n he_o say_v jesus_n christ_n the_o night_n in_o which_o he_o be_v betray_v or_o rather_o the_o night_n in_o which_o be_v deliver_v himself_o for_o the_o life_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n take_v bread_n into_o his_o holy_a immaculate_a blameless_a and_o immortal_a hand_n look_v up_o into_o heaven_n and_o show_v to_o thou_o god_n and_o father_n give_v thanks_n sanctify_v break_v he_o give_v unto_o we_o his_o disciple_n and_o apostle_n say_v take_v you_o and_o eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o and_o be_v give_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o like_a manner_n after_o he_o have_v sup_v take_v the_o chalice_n and_o mingle_v wine_n and_o water_n and_o look_v into_o heaven_n and_o show_v to_o thou_o god_n and_o father_n give_v thanks_n sanctify_v blessing_n fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o give_v unto_o we_o his_o disciple_n say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o and_o for_o many_o and_o be_v give_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n do_v this_o for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o for_o as_o often_o as_o you_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v this_o chalice_n you_o do_v show_v forth_o the_o death_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o do_v confess_v his_o resurrection_n until_o he_o come_v 6._o and_o further_o tell_v we_o what_o these_o gift_n and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n be_v he_o say_v christ_n our_o lord_n do_v come_v forth_o that_o he_o may_v be_v immolate_a and_o give_v for_o meat_n to_o the_o faithful_a and_o put_v a_o part_n of_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n into_o the_o chalice_n mingle_v they_o together_o he_o say_v the_o union_n of_o the_o most_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o god_n and_o saviour_n jesu_n christ._n and_o sygn_v the_o consecrate_a bread_n he_o say_v behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n the_o son_n of_o the_o father_n who_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n slay_v for_o the_o life_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n thus_o s._n james_n the_o apostle_n and_o much_o more_o to_o this_o effect_n in_o his_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church-seruice_n book_n which_o he_o make_v for_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n whereof_o he_o be_v bishop_n 7._o and_o the_o like_a have_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church-seruice-booke_n which_o be_v make_v by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n or_o apostolical_a man_n for_o the_o country_n and_o province_n which_o they_o have_v under_o their_o charge_n or_o which_o they_o have_v convert_v unto_o the_o christian_a catholic_a faith_n to_o the_o publish_n and_o dilate_v the_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_v of_o gift_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o be_v begin_v in_o jerusalem_n by_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o apostle_n all_o over_o the_o world_n for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o prophecy_n in_o that_o kind_n as_o the_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church-seruice_n book_n of_o s._n peter_n make_v for_o the_o roman_n and_o these_o western_a part_n of_o the_o world_n the_o liturgy_n of_o s._n matthew_n make_v for_o the_o ethiopian_n and_o further_a part_n of_o asia_n and_o africa_n the_o liturgy_n of_o s_n mark_v make_v for_o the_o egiptiens_n and_o grecian_n and_o so_o forth_o as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o by_o margarinus_n in_o his_o sixth_o tome_n of_o his_o bibliotheca_fw-la patrum_fw-la and_o in_o the_o first_o and_o last_o tome_n of_o the_o bibliotheca_fw-la patrum_fw-la set_v forth_o by_o the_o divines_n of_o colen_n 8._o of_o these_o liturgy_n and_o public_a church-seruice_n book_n the_o afore_o say_v proclus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o place_n afore_o cite_v write_v thus_o very_o many_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v famous_a for_o piety_n and_o some_o of_o those_o who_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n have_v deliver_v unto_o the_o church_n in_o writing_n the_o exposition_n of_o the_o mystitall_a liturgy_n among_o who_o s._n clement_n do_v challenge_v the_o first_o place_n who_o be_v a_o disciple_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o declare_v his_o successor_n by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o and_o s._n james_n the_o first_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n afterward_o basill_n the_o great_a find_v that_o many_o man_n think_v the_o former_a liturgy_n to_o long_o bring_v it_o into_o a_o more_o compendious_a form_n not_o long_o after_o our_o john_n who_o of_o his_o golden_a eloquence_n be_v call_v chrisostome_n have_v consideration_n of_o the_o infirmity_n of_o man_n that_o they_o may_v have_v no_o excuse_n take_v away_o many_o thing_n and_o prescribe_v a_o brief_a form_n etc._n etc._n after_o our_o saviour_n be_v assumptod_a into_o heaven_n the_o apostle_n before_o they_o be_v disperse_v over_o the_o world_n be_v of_o one_o mind_n and_o live_v together_o give_v themselves_o whole_o unto_o prayer_n and_o find_v great_a consolation_n in_o that_o mystical_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n they_o sunge_v the_o liturgy_n at_o large_a with_o many_o prayer_n thus_o proclus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n who_o
live_v above_o 1200._o year_n past_a and_o thus_o the_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o lord_n after_o a_o unbloudie_a manner_n which_o be_v begin_v at_o jerusalem_n by_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v after_o disperse_v and_o plant_v all_o over_o the_o christian_a world_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolical_a man_n their_o successor_n and_o have_v continue_v until_o this_o day_n as_o we_o may_v find_v by_o experience_n 9_o for_o our_o adversary_n to_o say_v that_o all_o these_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church-seruice_n book_n which_o corrupt_v all_o the_o liturgy_n can_v not_o be_v corrupt_v have_v be_v use_v by_o all_o nation_n country_n and_o people_n who_o have_v be_v convert_v by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o or_o apostolical_a man_n who_o name_n will_v be_v to_o tedious_a to_o rehearse_v have_v in_o this_o point_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n be_v corrupt_v without_o assign_v when_o or_o where_o or_o by_o what_o man_n or_o mean_n so_o main_a sundry_a and_o diverse_a nation_n separate_v by_o place_n government_n tongue_n in_o war_n one_o with_o another_o divide_v many_o time_n in_o other_o point_n of_o religion_n can_v become_v so_o general_o corrupt_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o point_n and_o that_o a_o thing_n which_o they_o for_o the_o most_o part_n all_o practise_v daily_o be_v as_o the_o prophet_n say_v but_o to_o excuse_v excuse_n in_o sin_n psal_n 140._o 4._o 10._o neither_o may_v our_o adversary_n say_v as_o they_o use_v to_o do_v in_o other_o thing_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v bring_v up_o this_o as_o new_a doctrine_n for_o first_o it_o be_v foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o old_a law_n before_o there_o be_v any_o christian_a pope_n second_o many_o of_o these_o nation_n who_o use_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v so_o far_o distant_a from_o he_o as_o that_o unless_o it_o be_v in_o these_o late-yeare_n that_o navigation_n and_o travel_v into_o strange_a country_n have_v be_v more_o in_o use_n they_o do_v scarce_o know_v whether_o there_o be_v such_o a_o man_n or_o no_o and_o many_o of_o they_o remain_v yet_o in_o schism_n and_o heresy_n divide_v from_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o grecian_n nestorian_n eutychian_o and_o other_o heretic_n in_o egypt_n the_o muscovite_n and_o russian_n 11._o moreover_o the_o afore_o say_v proclus_n in_o the_o place_n above_o cite_v affirm_v that_o by_o these_o prayer_n of_o the_o liturgy_n they_o expect_v the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o by_o his_o divine_a presence_n he_o may_v make_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n mix_v with_o water_n which_o be_v prepare_v for_o the_o sacrifice_n the_o self_n same_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n which_o religious_a rite_n be_v true_o observe_v until_o this_o day_n and_o shall_v be_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n thus_o proclus_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n about_o 1200._o year_n ago_o whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o this_o doctrine_n of_o offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o communicate_v of_o the_o same_o be_v no_o new_a doctrine_n nor_o invent_v by_o any_o man_n but_o institute_v by_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n in_o jerusalem_n and_o publish_v over_o the_o world_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolic_a man_n at_o the_o conversion_n of_o nation_n as_o be_v foretell_v by_o our_o saviour_n act._n 1._o as_o far_o witness_v s._n hierom._n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o prophet_n malachi_n say_v in_o every_o place_n there_o be_v offer_v a_o oblation_n not_o a_o unclean_a one_o as_o be_v offer_v by_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n but_o a_o clean_a one_o as_o be_v offer_v up_o in_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o christian_n the_o conclusion_n though_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n and_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n be_v delight_v with_o that_o worship_n which_o procee_v from_o our_o spirit_n yet_o because_o the_o foul_a as_o long_o as_o she_o be_v in_o this_o mortal_a body_n can_v make_v her_o inward_a act_n oblation_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o herself_o convenient_o and_o perfect_o except_o she_o behold_v the_o same_o in_o some_o sensible_a oblation_n of_o a_o gift_n or_o present_v offer_v visible_o to_o god_n before_o she_o as_o a_o mean_n sign_n or_o motive_n to_o move_v and_o stir_v she_o up_o unto_o that_o interior_a and_o visible_a sacrifice_n of_o herself_o the_o understanding_n of_o mortal_a man_n depend_v upon_o the_o sense_n according_a to_o that_o axiom_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o understanding_n which_o be_v not_o first_o either_o by_o itself_o or_o by_o some_o resemblance_n in_o some_o one_o of_o the_o sense_n therefore_o god_n of_o be_v infinite_a goodness_n condiscend_v unto_o our_o capacity_n have_v institute_v a_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o church_n to_o move_v and_o stir_v we_o up_o unto_o this_o interior_a and_o invisible_a wherein_o he_o so_o much_o delight_v the_o example_n whereof_o we_o may_v find_v in_o prayer_n god_n understand_v that_o prayer_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o that_o which_o delight_v he_o most_o be_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o mind_n yet_o because_o the_o operation_n and_o act_n of_o the_o soul_n in_o this_o life_n depend_v upon_o the_o organ_n of_o the_o body_n ●nd_v sense_n therefore_o god_n have_v institute_v vocal_a prayer_n or_o prayer_n with_o the_o mouth_n in_o his_o church_n ●s_v a_o sensible_a sign_n to_o provoke_v the_o heart_n fervent_o ●o_o pray_v and_o praise_v he_o so_o that_o those_o who_o will_v have_v man_n to_o practice_v and_o use_v the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n to_o god_n and_o yet_o deny_v they_o the_o exercise_n of_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n be_v like_a unto_o those_o who_o will_v have_v man_n pray_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o study_v to_o become_v learn_v and_o yet_o permit_v they_o no_o book_n nor_o exterior_a mean_n to_o learn_v which_o our_o most_o bless_a lord_n consider_v at_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o new_a law_n leave_v we_o not_o without_o a_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n but_o institute_v it_o in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o curtain_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o more_o powerful_o to_o move_v and_o stir_v up_o in_o we_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o god_n by_o the_o excellency_n and_o eminency_n of_o the_o outward_a object_n as_o i_o shall_v show_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o ensue_a book_n finis_fw-la censura_fw-la trractatus_fw-la hic_fw-la de_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la nihil_fw-la continet_fw-la quod_fw-la aut_fw-la rectae_fw-la fidei_fw-la aut_fw-la bonis_fw-la moribus_fw-la repugnet_fw-la imprimi_fw-la itaque_fw-la poterit_fw-la &_o divulgari_fw-la lovanij_fw-la 12_o febr._n 1637._o antonius_n loverius_n s._n t._n l_o apost_n &_o regius_n lib._n censor_n of_o the_o visible_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god._n the_o second_o part_n write_v by_o anonymus_n eremita_n sacrifice_n you_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o justice_n and_o hope_v in_o our_o lord_n psal_n 4._o 6._o at_o bruxelles_n by_o hubert_n antony_z velpius_n printer_n to_o his_o majesty_n 1638._o the_o preface_n religion_n say_v s._n thomas_n in_o 22._o quest_n 81._o art_n 1._o be_v a_o virtue_n by_o which_o man_n give_v to_o god_n due_a worship_n and_o reverence_n wherein_o he_o agree_v with_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n saying_n it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o religion_n to_o give_v due_a honour_n unto_o god_n and_o the_o honour_n and_o worship_n which_o be_v chief_o and_o most_o proper_o due_a unto_o god_n be_v the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o the_o outward_a visible_a sacrifice_n of_o some_o creature_n to_o express_v the_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o soul_n as_o word_n do_v thing_n which_o be_v proper_o latria_n or_o service_n due_a unto_o god_n as_o god_n and_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n as_o i_o have_v show_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o 5._o and_o 6._o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o part_n whereupon_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o without_o the_o offering_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n there_o can_v be_v any_o perfect_a religion_n for_o though_o some_o of_o the_o more_o pious_a sort_n of_o man_n by_o a_o long_a custom_n and_o much_o practice_n may_v attain_v unto_o a_o continual_a or_o often_o invisible_a sacrifice_n of_o their_o heart_n by_o inward_a anagogical_a act_n without_o the_o help_n of_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n yet_o because_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n in_o this_o life_n depend_v upon_o the_o organ_n of_o the_o body_n for_o their_o knowledge_n and_o operation_n therefore_o they_o have_v need_n to_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o sensible_a and_o visible_a thing_n unto_o god_n and_o invisible_a because_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v in_o the_o first_o to_o the_o roman_n the_o
the_o communion_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n offer_v in_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o both_o s._n paul_n teach_v the_o corinthian_n to_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o so_o to_o communicate_v of_o the_o same_o and_o that_o our_o saviour_n himself_o institute_v a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n and_o communion_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n 12._o moreover_o not_o only_a s._n paul_n have_v be_v at_o epistle_n the_o faith_n at_o corinth_n before_o the_o write_v word_n of_o this_o epistle_n corinth_n before_o he_o write_v this_o epistle_n and_o teach_v they_o by_o practice_n what_o they_o be_v to_o do_v in_o the_o communion_n and_o what_o to_o believe_v but_o also_o prisilla_n and_o aquilla_n act._n 18._o 18._o apollo_n act._n 19_o 1._o stephanus_n fortunatus_n and_o achaicus_n be_v at_o corinth_n and_o instruct_v they_o by_o practice_n what_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v in_o the_o communion_n and_o what_o to_o believe_v before_o this_o epistle_n be_v write_v as_o appear_v 1._o cor._n 16._o which_o consider_v and_o see_v that_o the_o corinthian_n even_o in_o the_o infancy_n of_o their_o church_n offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o communicate_v of_o the_o same_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o many_o counsel_n and_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n who_o can_v doubt_v whether_o s._n paul_n teach_v the_o corinthian_n and_o grecian_n to_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o to_o communicate_v of_o the_o same_o that_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o be_v deceive_v see_v that_o it_o be_v more_o hard_a and_o uncertain_a for_o man_n to_o gather_v and_o understand_v a_o thing_n deliver_v by_o a_o epistle_n only_o and_o that_o in_o this_o point_n brief_a and_o short_a then_o both_o by_o see_v it_o donn_v and_o practise_v many_o year_n and_o by_o a_o epistle_n also_o both_o together_o when_o a_o epistle_n only_o may_v with_o great_a facility_n be_v alter_v and_o change_v than_o a_o religion_n which_o be_v settle_v and_o establish_v in_o many_o city_n and_o province_n as_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n chap._n iii_o the_o scripture_n and_o all_o know_a christian-mens_n book_n who_o write_v of_o this_o subject_n before_o luther_n repute_v heretic_n to_o both_o party_n only_o except_v teach_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n 1._o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o plain_a for_o the_o institution_n of_o a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n sacrifice_n the_o scripture_n manifest_a for_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o s._n augustin_n speak_v of_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o his_o oration_n against_o the_o jew_n faith_fw-mi down_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o 6._o tom_n say_v unto_o they_o search_v the_o scripture_n for_o they_o bear_v testimony_n of_o this_o clean_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v unto_o the_o god_n of_o israel_n noth_z of_o your_o nation_n only_o from_o who_o hand_n he_o foretell_v that_o he_o will_v not_o receive_v but_o of_o all_o nation_n who_o say_v come_v let_v we_o ascend_v unto_o the_o mountain_n of_o god_n not_o in_o one_o place_n as_o it_o be_v command_v you_o in_o the_o earthly_a jerusalem_n but_o in_o every_o place_n even_o unto_o jerusalem_n it_o tyme._n sacrifice_n offer_v in_o every_o place_n in_o s._n augustine_n tyme._n self_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n preach_v unto_o the_o christian_n in_o his_o first_o sermon_n upon_o the_o 33._o psalm_n he_o say_v faithful_a man_n who_o have_v read_v the_o gospel_n do_v know_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n dilate_v over_o the_o whole_a globe_n of_o the_o earth_n thus_o s._n augustine_n both_o unto_o the_o jew_n and_o faithful_a christian_n whereby_o we_o gather_v four_o thing_n first_o that_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o s._n augustine_n both_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n speak_v plain_o and_o manifest_o enough_o of_o a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o be_v to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o new_a law_n second_o that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v in_o s._n augustins_n time_n dilate_v over_o the_o whole_a globe_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o believe_v of_o all_o faithful_a man_n three_o christian_n why_o our_o adversary_n read_v scripture_n and_o find_v not_o sacrifice_n for_o christian_n that_o the_o cause_n why_o our_o adversary_n do_v not_o or_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o use_v a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v not_o for_o that_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o sufficient_o speak_v of_o it_o but_o for_o that_o they_o be_v blind_v with_o obstinacy_n and_o obduration_n of_o heart_n with_o the_o jew_n and_o so_o though_o they_o read_v the_o bible_n every_o day_n and_o hear_v it_o read_v many_o time_n yet_o as_o our_o lord_n say_v see_v they_o see_v not_o and_o hear_v they_o hear_v not_o neither_o do_v they_o understand_v etc._n etc._n for_o their_o heart_n be_v waxen_a gross_a sacrifice_n the_o jews_n deny_v christian_a sacrifice_n matth._n 13._o 13._o foverthly_a our_o adversary_n in_o deny_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n do_v take_v part_n with_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n against_o the_o faithful_a christian_n of_o all_o former_a age_n 2._o again_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o say_a oration_n against_o the_o jew_n say_v unto_o they_o as_o we_o in_o his_o word_n adversary_n s._n augustins_n speech_n to_o the_o jews_n apply_v to_o our_o adversary_n may_v say_v unto_o our_o adversary_n lest_o you_o shall_v think_v o_o jews_n because_o you_o do_v not_o offer_v sacrifice_n and_o that_o god_n will_v not_o receive_v sacrifice_n at_o your_o hand_n that_o sacrifice_n be_v not_o to_o be_v offer_v unto_o god_n which_o he_o indeed_o do_v not_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o who_o want_v not_o any_o of_o our_o good_n yet_o that_o he_o be_v not_o without_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v not_o profitable_a unto_o he_o but_o unto_o you_o he_o add_v and_o faith_n from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n even_o unto_o the_o go_v down_o my_o nane_fw-la be_v make_v famous_a in_o all_o nation_n and_o in_o every_o place_n there_o be_v offer_v a_o clean_a sacrifice_n unto_o my_o name_n for_o great_a be_v my_o name_n in_o the_o gentill_n say_v the_o lord_n omnipotent_a what_o will_v thou_o answer_v to_o this_o o_o jew_n open_v thy_o eye_n yet_o at_o last_o and_o see_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o christian_n to_o be_v offer_v from_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o sun_n unto_o the_o go_v down_o not_o in_o one_o place_n as_o it_o be_v appoint_v for_o you_o but_o in_o all_o place_n not_o unto_o any_o god_n what_o soever_o but_o unto_o that_o god_n who_o foretell_v these_o thing_n the_o god_n of_o israel_n thus_o s._n augustine_n against_o the_o jew_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n dilate_v over_o the_o world_n in_o s._n augustins_n time_n not_o only_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o they_o do_v now_o but_o also_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v teach_v so_o to_o do_v by_o the_o sripture_n 3._o and_o not_o only_o in_o these_o book_n s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o christian_n offer_v lord_n s._n augustins_n often_o repetition_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n unto_o god_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o often_o in_o his_o other_o work_n he_o call_v the_o eucharist_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o in_o the_o 25._o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n against_o cresconius_n say_v the_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n itself_o and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o in_o 27._o chapter_n follow_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o chest_n and_o in_o the_o 8._o chapter_n of_o his_o 22._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n he_o tell_v we_o how_o one_o of_o his_o neighbour_n hesperius_n by_o name_n a_o tribune_n find_v his_o cattle_n and_o servant_n to_o be_v molest_v by_o evil_a spirit_n come_v unto_o his_o priest_n in_o his_o absence_n and_o desire_v that_o some_o one_o of_o they_o will_v come_v thither_o and_o by_o his_o prayer_n dryve_v away_o these_o wicked_a spirit_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n expel_v wicked_a spirit_n spirit_n one_o go_v and_o offer_v there_o say_v s._n augustine_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n pray_v as_o well_o as_o he_o can_v that_o the_o
passion_n resurrection_n from_o hell_n and_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n we_o do_v offer_v unto_o thou_o this_o immaculate_a host_n reasonable_a host_n unbloudy_a host_n this_o holy_a bread_n and_o chalice_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o beseech_v that_o thou_o will_v receive_v this_o oblation_n in_o thy_o high_a altar_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o thy_o angel_n as_o thou_o have_v vouchsafe_v to_o receive_v the_o gift_n of_o thy_o child_n abel_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o patriarch_n abraham_n and_o that_o which_o the_o high_a priest_n melchisedech_n offer_v unto_o thou_o which_o word_n be_v also_o use_v in_o the_o in_o the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n even_o until_o this_o day_n 8._o s._n hierome_n who_o as_o we_o have_v place_v they_o be_v the_o six_o among_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o catholic_n sacrament_n s._n hierome_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n church_n so_o constant_o believe_v a_o sacrifice_n and_o communion_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o in_o the_o 5._o chapter_n of_o his_o 3._o book_n against_o the_o pelagian_o he_o say_v christ_n have_v teach_v his_o apostle_n this_o that_o these_o who_o have_v daily_a confidence_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n may_v bold_o say_v our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n as_o the_o catholic_a church_n use_v even_o until_o this_o day_n in_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n upon_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o titus_n a_o bishop_n be_v to_o offer_v pure_a victimes_o every_o day_n to_o god_n for_o his_o own_o sin_n and_o sin_n of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o 19_o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n against_o jovinian_a priest_n ought_v always_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o people_n in_o the_o 3._o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n against_o vigilantius_n defend_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o as_o he_o say_v offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n over_o the_o venerable_a bone_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n in_o his_o 150._o epistle_n moses_n have_v not_o give_v we_o true_a bread_n but_o our_o lord_n jesus_n he_o be_v the_o guest_n and_o the_o banquet_n he_o be_v he_o that_o eat_v and_o who_o be_v eat_v we_o drink_v his_o blood_n and_o without_o he_o we_o can_v drink_v it_o and_o daily_o in_o his_o sacrifice_n we_o tread_v forth_o the_o new_a red_a wine_n of_o the_o branch_n of_o the_o true_a vine_n and_o of_o the_o viniard_a of_o sorac_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v choose_v and_o out_o of_o these_o we_o drink_v new_a wine_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o 5._o book_n upon_o the_o prophet_n jeremie_n allude_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o christian_n he_o say_v the_o people_n of_o god_n shall_v eat_v the_o bread_n which_o be_v bear_v in_o our_o village_n of_o bethlem_n where_o he_o sometime_o live_v a_o religious_a life_n in_o a_o monastery_n upon_o the_o 3._o chapter_n of_o sophonias_n priest_n serve_v the_o eucharist_n and_o distribute_v our_o lord_n blood_n to_o his_o people_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o heliodorus_n he_o say_v god_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v speak_v any_o sinister_a priest_n s._n hierome_n his_o respect_n to_o priest_n thing_n of_o those_o who_o succeed_v to_o the_o apostolical_a degree_n do_v make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n with_o their_o holy_a mouth_n by_o who_o we_o also_o become_v christian_n again_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o euagrius_n he_o say_v at_o the_o prayer_n of_o bishopp_n and_o priest_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v which_o eminency_n and_o dignity_n of_o consecrate_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n who_o be_v the_o lamb_n without_o spott_n and_o the_o light_n of_o heaven_n so_o penetrate_v his_o heart_n that_o though_o a_o priest_n yet_o out_o of_o his_o profound_a humility_n s._n hieromes_n humility_n humility_n and_o venerable_a respect_n to_o so_o great_a a_o mystery_n as_o be_v the_o consecration_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n will_v not_o venture_v to_o consecrate_v or_o offer_v christian_a sacrifice_n as_o witness_v s._n epiphanius_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o john_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n translate_v out_o of_o greek_a into_o latin_a by_o s._n hierome_n himself_o and_o fett_v down_o both_o among_o s._n hieromes_n epistle_n and_o in_o s._n epiphanius_n his_o work_n where_o he_o say_v that_o after_o he_o have_v see_v that_o there_o be_v a_o multitude_n of_o holy_a brother_n or_o friar_n gather_v together_o in_o a_o monastery_n and_o the_o holy_a priest_n hierome_n and_o vincent_n who_o live_v among_o they_o out_o of_o their_o modesty_n and_o humility_n will_v not_o exercise_v the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n due_a unto_o their_o function_n nor_o labour_n in_o this_o christian_n sacrifice_n the_o chief_a salvation_n of_o christian_n part_n of_o the_o ministry_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a salvation_n of_o christian_n he_o ordain_v s._n hieromes_n brother_n a_o priest_n to_o supply_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o monastery_n for_o the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n as_o further_o witness_v s._n hierome_n in_o the_o 3._o chapter_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o theophilus_n against_o john_n of_o hierufalem_fw-la and_o epiphanius_n above_o cite_v 9_o by_o this_o which_o have_v be_v say_v it_o be_v so_o manifest_a that_o all_o the_o six_o aforesaid_a ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n not_o only_o hold_v and_o teach_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o a_o communion_n of_o the_o same_o but_o also_o that_o this_o their_o opinion_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v without_o all_o controversy_n before_o all_o those_o doctor_n flourish_v optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la who_o write_v milevitanus_fw-la optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la of_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o heretical_a donatist_n against_o the_o eucharist_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n consecrate_v by_o catholic_a priest_n say_v in_o his_o 2._o book_n against_o parmenianus_n that_o your_o aforesaid_a catholic_n the_o fury_n of_o the_o donatist_n against_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o eucharist_n of_o catholic_n bishopp_n may_v violate_v all_o holy_a thing_n they_o command_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v cast_v unto_o dog_n not_o without_o a_o manifestation_n of_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n for_o the_o same_o dog_n become_v mad_a with_o their_o tooth_n tear_v their_o master_n as_o thief_n and_o guilty_a of_o the_o holy_a body_n etc._n etc._n again_o in_o his_o 6._o book_n describe_v yet_o more_o at_o large_a the_o fury_n of_o these_o heretic_n against_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n offer_v by_o catholic_n priest_n say_v what_o be_v so_o sacrilegious_a as_o to_o break_v raise_v or_o remove_v the_o altar_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o which_o you_o also_o sometime_o offer_v wpon_n which_o the_o vow_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n be_v bear_v where_o almighty_a god_n be_v invocate_v where_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v desire_v do_v descend_v from_o whence_o many_o take_v the_o pledge_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n the_o defence_n of_o faith_n and_o hope_v of_o resurrection_n etc._n etc._n for_o what_o be_v the_o altar_n but_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n all_o these_o thing_n your_o fury_n have_v either_o raise_v or_o break_v or_o remove_v etc._n etc._n what_o have_v christ_n offend_v you_o who_o body_n and_o blood_n do_v dwell_v there_o upon_o the_o altar_n for_o a_o certain_a time_n what_o have_v you_o offend_v against_o yourselves_o that_o you_o shall_v break_v these_o altar_n upon_o the_o which_o for_o many_o year_n before_o we_o you_o offer_v as_o we_o think_v holy_o while_o that_o you_o do_v wicked_o persecute_v our_o hand_n there_o where_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n do_v dwell_v you_o strike_v your_o own_o whereby_o you_o imitate_v the_o jew_n they_o cast_v their_o hand_n on_o christ_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o you_o strike_v he_o upon_o the_o altar_n and_o afterwards_o this_o wicked_a deed_n be_v double_v while_o you_o break_v the_o chalice_n the_o bear_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o species_n you_o have_v turn_v into_o mass_n or_o lump_n provide_v merchandise_n for_o wicked_a fair_n thus_o optatus_n 10._o s._n cyprian_n live_v abond_n the_o year_n 240._o and_o sacrifice_n s._n cyprian_n his_o belief_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n he_o in_o his_o 63._o epistle_n prove_v against_o the_o aquarij_fw-la certain_a heretic_n who_o be_v in_o his_o time_n that_o jesus-christ_n our_o lord_n god_n be_v author_n and_o teacher_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o in_o his_o time_n be_v use_v and_o believe_v throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n as_o there_o he_o prove_v at_o large_a and_o by_o the_o same_o place_n of_o
scripture_n which_o catholic_n at_o this_o day_n allege_v against_o the_o different_a opinion_n of_o their_o adversary_n add_v also_o in_o the_o same_o sacrifice_n christ_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v himself_o in_o sacrifice_n epistle_n say_v who_o be_v more_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o high_a god_n than_o our_o lord_n jesus-christ_n who_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n the_o father_n and_o offer_v the_o same_o which_o melchisedech_n have_v offer_v that_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n to_o wit_n his_o body_n and_o blood_n again_o jesus-christ_n our_o lord_n god_n he_o be_v the_o chief_a priest_n of_o god_n the_o father_n he_o offer_v first_o himself_n to_o god_n the_o father_n and_o command_v that_o which_o he_o then_o do_v to_o be_v do_v in_o commemoration_n of_o he_o moreover_o he_o there_o say_v to_o the_o aquarian_a heretic_n who_o will_v only_o use_v water_n and_o no_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o chalice_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n wherewith_o chalice_n christ_n blood_n see_v in_o the_o chalice_n we_o be_v redeem_v and_o quicken_v can_v be_v see_v to_o be_v in_o the_o chalice_n when_o wine_n whereby_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v show_v be_v not_o put_v into_o the_o chalice_n and_o cite_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o by_o s._n matthew_n in_o the_o 26._o chapter_n of_o his_o gospel_n add_v hereby_o we_o find_v that_o the_o chalice_n which_o our_o lord_n offer_v be_v mix_v and_o that_o it_o have_v be_v wine_n which_o he_o call_v his_o blood_n whereby_o it_o do_v appear_v blood_n it_o be_v first_o wine_n and_o after_o his_o blood_n that_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o offer_v if_o there_o be_v no_o wine_n put_v into_o the_o chalice_n neither_o be_v our_o lord_n sacrifice_v celebrate_v with_o lawful_a sanctification_n unless_o our_o oblation_n and_o sacrifice_n shall_v be_v answerable_a to_o the_o passion_n wherein_o our_o saviour_n shed_v blood_n and_o water_n etc._n etc._n john_n 15._o 34._o again_o as_o with_o this_o common_a wine_n the_o mind_n be_v set_v at_o liberty_n the_o spirit_n free_v and_o all_o sorrow_n christ._n christian_n drink_n the_o blood_n of_o christ._n banish_v so_o by_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o healthful_a cup_n we_o cast_v away_o the_o memory_n of_o the_o old_a man_n and_o do_v forget_v our_o former_a worldly_a conversation_n etc._n etc._n again_o how_o shall_v we_o shed_v our_o blood_n for_o christ_n who_o be_v ashamed_a to_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o christ._n this_o and_o much_o more_o to_o this_o effect_n have_v s._n cyprian_n in_o one_o afore_o say_a epistle_n beside_o what_o he_o have_v disperse_v through_o his_o other_o work_n 11._o alexander_n the_o first_o be_v make_v bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n 121._o and_o suffer_v a_o most_o cruel_a martyrdom_n for_o the_o faith_n in_o rome_n when_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n flourish_v among_o the_o roman_n as_o our_o adversary_n confess_v and_o he_o in_o his_o first_o epistle_n unto_o all_o catholic_n repeat_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n add_v with_o such_o host_n god_n will_v be_v delight_v and_o please_v for_o nothing_o can_v be_v great_a in_o sacrifice_n then_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o oblation_n more_o to_o be_v desire_v then_o this_o for_o this_o exceed_v all_o oblation_n which_o be_v to_o be_v offer_v unto_o god_n with_o a_o pure_a conscience_n and_o to_o be_v receive_v with_o a_o clean_a heart_n and_o to_o be_v worship_v of_o all_o thus_o s._n alexander_n 12._o s._n clement_n of_o who_o s._n paul_n make_v mention_v philippian_n 4._o 3._o in_o the_o 57_o chapter_n of_o his_o 2._o book_n of_o apostolical_a constitution_n say_v let_v the_o bishop_n pray_v in_o these_o word_n conserve_v o_o lord_n thy_o people_n safe_a and_o bless_v thy_o inheritance_n etc._n etc._n afterward_o let_v sacrifice_n be_v make_v all_o the_o people_n expect_v and_o pray_v insilence_n and_o sacrifice_n be_v donn_v let_v every_o order_n a_o part_n receive_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o precious_a blood_n approach_v in_o order_n with_o modesty_n and_o reverence_n as_o unto_o the_o body_n of_o the_o king_n before_o they_o receive_v it_o thus_o these_o most_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n institute_v by_o our_o saviour_n and_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o they_o prove_v by_o the_o same_o authority_n of_o scripture_n which_o the_o catholic_n alleadg_n at_o this_o day_n and_o all_o christian_a man_n book_n and_o work_n who_o have_v write_v of_o this_o subject_n be_v so_o conformable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o before_o cite_v father_n in_o this_o point_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o our_o adversary_n know_v and_o repute_v heretic_n to_o both_o party_n only_o except_v be_v not_o able_a to_o assign_v or_o bring_v forth_o any_o book_n write_v before_o the_o rebellion_n of_o luther_n which_o deni_v the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o his_o only_a son_n among_o christian_n and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o scripture_n and_o all_o know_a christian_n man_n book_n who_o write_v of_o this_o subject_n before_o luther_n know_v and_o repute_v heretic_n or_o enormish_n erroneous_a man_n to_o both_o party_n only_o except_v teach_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n chap._n iv_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o other_o blessing_n be_v and_o may_v be_v obtain_v by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n 1._o the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o redemption_n which_o parliament_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n like_o a_o pardon_n at_o the_o end_n of_o a_o parliament_n our_o lord_n offer_v for_o we_o upon_o the_o cross_n be_v like_a unto_o a_o general_a pardon_n at_o the_o end_n of_o a_o parliament_n which_o be_v in_o itself_o sufficient_a to_o pardon_v all_o his_o majesty_n subject_n for_o the_o offence_n there_o in_o specify_v be_v they_o tenntymes_o more_o than_o they_o be_v yet_o actual_o it_o pardon_v not_o any_o one_o of_o they_o but_o those_o who_o use_v the_o mean_n which_o his_o majesty_n law_n require_v in_o that_o case_n for_o the_o apply_v his_o gracious_a general_a pardon_n unto_o themselves_o which_o be_v to_o sue_v out_o a_o write_v of_o pardon_n or_o the_o like_a so_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o redemption_n upon_o the_o cross_n be_v in_o itself_o sufficient_a to_o redeem_v ten_o thousand_o world_n if_o there_o be_v or_o can_v be_v so_o many_o from_o everlasting_a pain_n and_o from_o the_o punishment_n impose_v upon_o man_n for_o original_a and_o actual_a sin_n as_o wittness_v s._n john_n say_v christ_n be_v the_o propitiation_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o not_o for_o we_o only_o but_o also_o for_o the_o whole_a world_n yet_o actual_o according_a to_o the_o common_a concourse_n of_o god_n it_o redeem_v not_o any_o one_o man_n from_o everlasting_a torment_n but_o those_o who_o use_v the_o mean_n to_o apply_v the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o redemption_n upon_o the_o cross_n to_o themselves_o express_v in_o the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o withness_v s._n paul_n say_v christ_n be_v make_v to_o all_o that_o obey_v he_o cause_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n heb._n 5._o 9_o 2._o and_o among_o the_o many_o mean_n which_o almighty_a god_n have_v leave_v unto_o mankind_n to_o apply_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o redemption_n and_o merit_n of_o christ_n passion_n unto_o we_o this_o be_v one_o the_o offering_n of_o a_o certain_a and_o particular_a external_a visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o god_n represent_v the_o inward_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o heart_n and_o the_o passion_n of_o his_o son_n thereby_o to_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o our_o god_n and_o supreme_a sovereign_a lord_n and_o apply_v the_o merit_n of_o the_o say_a passion_n unto_o ourselves_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n even_o from_o the_o beginning_n or_o first_o plantation_n there_o of_o upon_o earth_n for_o abel_n no_o abraham_n isaac_n jacob_n job_n and_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n offer_v particular_a visible_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n in_o commemoration_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o come_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o his_o passion_n who_o be_v presen_o promise_v upon_o the_o fall_n of_o adam_n gen._n 3._o 5._o and_o in_o virtue_n slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n apoc._n 13._o 12._o whereupon_o s._n john_n say_v he_o have_v redeem_v we_o to_o god_n in_o his_o blood_n out_o of_o every_o tribe_n and_o tongue_n and_o people_n and_o nation_n apoc._n 5._o 9_o and_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n in_o
any_o other_o act._n 4._o 14._o 3._o in_o proof_n here_o of_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n to_o come_v abel_n offer_v a_o great_a host_n to_o god_n than_o cain_n by_o which_o justice_n abel_n by_o sacrifice_n obtain_v testimony_n of_o justice_n he_o obtain_v testimony_n that_o he_o be_v just_a heb._n 11._o no_o build_v a_o altar_n to_o our_o lord_n offer_a holocauste_n upon_o the_o altar_n and_o our_o lord_n smell_v a_o sweet_a savour_n and_o say_v i_o will_v no_o more_o curse_v the_o earth_n for_o man_n and_o god_n bless_v no_n &_o his_o son_n gen._n 8._o &_o 9_o job_n when_o the_o day_n blessing_n no_o by_o sacrifice_n obtain_v blessing_n of_o feast_v which_o his_o child_n make_v be_v past_a arise_v up_o early_o offer_v holocau_v for_o every_o one_o of_o they_o for_o he_o say_v lest_o my_o son_n have_v sin_v job._n 1._o our_o sin_n job_n offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n lord_n say_v to_o eliphaz_n the_o themanite_n my_o fury_n be_v wrath_n against_o thou_o and_o against_o thy_o two_o friend_n take_v therefore_o seven_o ox_n and_o seven_o ram_n and_o go_v to_o my_o servant_n job_n and_o offer_v holocauste_n for_o yourselves_o and_o my_o servant_n job_n shall_v pray_v for_o you_o etc._n etc._n that_o the_o folly_n be_v not_o impute_v sin_n eliphaz_n by_o sacrifice_n and_o prayer_n obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n unto_o you_o job_n 42._o in_o the_o write_a law_n god_n often_o command_v the_o priest_n and_o people_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n say_v if_o the_o multitude_n of_o israel_n be_v ignorant_a and_o through_o ignorance_n do_v that_o which_o be_v against_o the_o commandment_n of_o our_o lod_n etc._n etc._n they_o shall_v offer_v for_o their_o sin_n a_o calf_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o priest_n pray_v for_o they_o our_o lord_n will_v be_v propitious_a unto_o they_o levit._fw-la 4._o 13._o if_o a_o prince_n sin_n through_o ignorance_n etc._n etc._n he_o shall_v offer_v a_o host_n to_o our_o lord_n a_o buck_n of_o the_o goat_n without_o spot_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o priest_n shall_v pray_v for_o he_o and_o for_o his_o sin_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v forgive_v he_o and_o if_o a_o soul_n of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o land_n shall_v sin_n through_o ignorance_n do_v any_o of_o these_o thing_n that_o by_o the_o law_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v forbid_v and_o offend_v etc._n etc._n he_o shall_v offer_v a_o she_o goat_n without_o spot_n etc._n etc._n the_o priest_n shall_v pray_v for_o he_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v forgive_v he_o levit._fw-la 4._o 27._o and_o the_o like_a be_v say_v of_o many_o other_o sacrifice_n offer_v for_o sin_n in_o the_o 4._o 5._o and_o 6._o chapter_n of_o leviticus_fw-la which_o manner_n of_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n continue_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n among_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n until_o this_o last_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n 4._o at_o the_o last_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n our_o saviour_n do_v not_o take_v away_o out_o of_o his_o church_n priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o such_o sin_n our_o saviour_n constitute_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n sort_n as_o that_o he_o will_v have_v no_o more_o exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n offer_v unto_o god_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n this_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n wcich_a he_o come_v to_o fulfil_v and_o not_o to_o break_v math._n 5._o but_o translate_v the_o priesthood_n from_o the_o order_n of_o aron_n unto_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n heb._n 7_o and_o change_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o brute_n beast_n which_o be_v offer_v in_o commemoration_n of_o he_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o old_a law_n into_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o new_a law_n to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n concern_v priesthoop_n sacrifice_n and_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o sacrifice_n offer_v in_o commemoration_n of_o he_o when_o take_v bread_n he_o bless_v break_v and_o give_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n and_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o cor._n 11._o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n as_o wittness_v origen_n in_o his_o 35._o tract_n upon_o s._n matthew_n s._n chrysostome_n upon_o the_o 26._o of_o s._n matthew_n and_o s._n damascene_fw-la in_o the_o 14._o chapter_n of_o his_o 3._o book_n orthodoxae_fw-la fidei_fw-la who_o all_o cite_n this_o text_n in_o the_o place_n aforesaid_a and_o there_o unto_o as_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o mean_v thereof_o and_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v not_o put_v into_o the_o bible_n at_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o bread_n because_o they_o be_v annex_v unto_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o chalice_n math._n 26._o yet_o the_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church-seruice_n book_n set_v forth_o by_o s._n james_n the_o apostle_n have_v these_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n thus_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v and_o give_v for_o you_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n s._n mark_v in_o his_o liturgy_n read_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o and_o distribute_v in_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n s._n basil_n s._n chrysostome_n and_o the_o aethiopian_n in_o their_o liturgy_n read_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o in_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n 5._o in_o like_a manner_n our_o saviour_n take_v the_o chalice_n he_o give_v thanks_n and_o give_v to_o the_o apostle_n say_v sin_n the_o chalice_n offer_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n drink_n you_o all_o of_o this_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o unto_o remission_n of_o sin_n math._n 16._o and_o then_o offer_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o many_o according_a to_o his_o word_n and_o when_o he_o have_v donn_v he_o establish_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o give_n of_o his_o body_n and_o shed_v of_o his_o blood_n unto_o god_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n say_v this_o do_v for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o luk._n 22._o and_o this_o do_v you_o as_o often_o you_o shall_v drink_v for_o the_o commemoraton_n of_o i_o 1._o cor._n 11._o and_o so_o fullfil_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n concern_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o establish_v in_o his_o church_n that_o one_o pure_a and_o clean_a oblation_n or_o host_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o place_n of_o the_o many_o and_o diverse_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v use_v in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o write_v law_n of_o moses_n 6._o and_o that_o this_o change_n of_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n may_v be_v the_o better_o know_v change_v propitiatory_a sacrifice_n not_o take_v away_o but_o change_v our_o lord_n do_v not_o speak_v only_o once_o of_o it_o but_o diverse_a time_n and_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n as_o witness_v the_o liturgy_n before_o cite_v and_o s._n damascene_fw-la in_o the_o 14._o chapter_n of_o his_o 3._o book_n orthodoxae_fw-la fidei_fw-la and_o also_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n uhich_v shall_v be_v break_v or_o deliver_v for_o you_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n as_o witness_v origen_n and_o s._n chrysostome_n in_o the_o place_n before_o cite_v and_o this_o diversity_n of_o word_n our_o lord_n use_v command_v propitiatory_a sacrifice_n command_v to_o express_v that_o he_o both_o than_o break_v his_o body_n to_o god_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o also_o command_v that_o it_o and_o no_o other_o body_n shall_v be_v break_v to_o god_n for_o we_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o his_o church_n and_o so_o make_v void_a all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o establish_v this_o of_o the_o new_a and_o therefore_o also_o he_o say_v of_o the_o chalice_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o many_o unto_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n as_o witness_v the_o greek_a and_o latin_a bibles_n for_o the_o greek_a bibles_n read_v these_o word_n in_o the_o present_a tense_n and_o the_o latins_n in_o the_o future_a tense_n to_o signify_v unto_o we_o that_o our_o lord_n then_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n
offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n the_o father_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o withal_o give_v a_o express_a command_n that_o no_o other_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n shall_v be_v offer_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o his_o church_n but_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o we_o see_v fulfil_v 7._o as_o faith_n in_o jesus-christ_n to_o come_v and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o lord_n upon_o the_o cross_n to_o come_v do_v passion_n salvation_n at_o all_o time_n by_o virtue_n of_o our_o lord_n passion_n not_o hinder_v the_o faithful_a in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o write_v law_n from_o the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n in_o the_o commemoration_n of_o christ_n passion_n to_o come_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n so_o neither_o may_v it_o do_v in_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n see_v that_o christ_n be_v slay_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n apoc._n 13._o 8._o and_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o passion_n the_o faithful_a in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o write_v law_n be_v save_v as_o they_o be_v now_o as_o our_o adversary_n together_o with_o we_o confess_v though_o now_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n have_v better_a mean_n because_o the_o law_n bring_v nothing_o to_o perfection_n but_o a_o introduction_n to_o a_o better_a hope_n heb._n 7._o 19_o and_o jesus_n be_v make_v a_o surty_a of_o a_o better_a testament_n heb._n 7._o 22._o which_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v if_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n he_o have_v not_o institute_v as_o he_o do_v a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o sin_n in_o better_a term_n 8._o and_o not_o only_o the_o scripture_n at_o the_o institution_n sin_n all_o high_a priest_n ordain_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o sin_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n do_v affirm_v that_o our_o lord_n offer_v a_o propitiatrie_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o also_o s._n paul_n say_v every_o high_a priest_n take_v from_o among_o man_n be_v appoint_v for_o man_n in_o these_o thing_n which_o appertain_v to_o god_n that_o he_o may_v offer_v gift_n and_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n heb._n 5._o 1._o wherefore_o see_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v a_o high_a priest_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n heb._n 5._o 10._o it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o offer_v gift_n and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n see_v that_o every_o high_a priest_n do_v it_o and_o consider_v that_o he_o ordain_v the_o apostle_n bishop_n priest_n the_o apostle_n high_a priest_n and_o his_o priest_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n act._n 1._o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n he_o both_o offer_v gift_n and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o also_o ordain_v the_o apostle_n bishop_n and_o high_a priest_n for_o to_o offer_v gift_n and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o see_v that_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o no_o other_o gift_n give_v or_o break_v to_o god_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n it_o manifest_o follow_v that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n institute_v a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v offer_v in_o his_o church_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n because_o he_o then_o teach_v his_o church_n what_o she_o shall_v do_v herein_o 9_o and_o not_o only_o the_o ancient_a father_n when_o they_o have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o last_o supper_n of_o our_o sin_n the_o father_n affirm_v that_o our_o lord_n institute_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n lord_n affirm_v that_o our_o saviour_n offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n as_o s._n clement_n in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n of_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o apostolical_a constitution_n s._n alexander_n in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o his_o epistle_n unto_o all_o catholic_n s._n irenaeus_n in_o the_o 23._o chapter_n of_o his_o 5._o book_n of_o heresy_n origen_n in_o his_o 35._o tract_n upon_o s._n matthew_n s._n cyprian_n in_o his_o 63._o epistle_n s._n chrisostome_n in_o his_o 28._o homily_n upon_o s._n math_n s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 24._o chapter_n of_o his_o 1._o book_n de_fw-fr peccatorum_fw-la meritis_fw-la but_o all_o the_o public_a liturgy_n or_o church_n service_n book_n for_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o communion_n which_o have_v be_v use_v by_o any_o nation_n or_o people_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n before_o luther_n repute_v heretic_n only_o except_v affirm_v that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n institute_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n as_o the_o liturgy_n or_o book_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o this_o sacrament_n set_v forth_o by_o s._n peter_n s._n james_n s._n mark_v s._n basil_n s._n chrysostome_n etc._n etc._n and_o all_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n the_o promise_n of_o god_n consider_v can_v not_o decay_n in_o the_o right_a use_n and_o belief_n of_o this_o sacrament_n 10._o our_o saviour_n come_v to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n sacrifice_n our_o saviour_n come_v to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n concern_v sacrifice_n and_o the_o prophet_n as_o he_o wittness_v math._n 5._o and_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v figure_n and_o shadow_n of_o this_o one_o and_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o witness_v the_o scripture_n say_v priest_n that_o offer_v gift_n according_a to_o the_o law_n serve_v unto_o the_o example_n and_o shadow_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n heb._n 8._o 5._o for_o the_o law_n have_v a_o shadow_n of_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v heb._n 10._o 1._o and_o all_o these_o thing_n happen_v to_o they_o in_o figure_n 1._o cor._n 10._o for_o the_o law_n bring_v nothing_o to_o perfection_n but_o a_o introduction_n to_o a_o better_a hope_n heb._n 7._o 19_o whereupon_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n say_v israel_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n do_v serve_v in_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n where_o with_o the_o singular_a sacrifice_n new_a the_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o old_a law_n shadow_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o new_a be_v signify_v which_o now_o the_o israel_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n do_v offer_v again_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o say_v our_o lord_n have_v swear_v and_o it_o shall_v not_o repent_v he_o thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n to_o commend_v that_o healthful_a sacrifice_n wherein_o his_o holy_a body_n and_o blood_n be_v shed_v for_o we_o where_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v command_v to_o be_v immolate_a of_o unclean_a beast_n be_v shadow_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o also_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o thanksgiving_n peace_n laud_n and_o praise_n and_o for_o the_o obtain_n of_o all_o those_o thing_n for_o which_o the_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o write_v law_n be_v use_v to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n and_o prophecy_n concern_v these_o sacrifice_n 11._o wherefore_o see_v that_o in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o law_n of_o moses_n there_o be_v not_o only_o propitiatory_a new_a the_o diverse_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n fulfil_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o also_o of_o thanksgiving_n and_o for_o peace_n as_o also_o upon_o vow_n make_v for_o the_o obtain_v some_o good_a thing_n to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o good_a of_o personne_n as_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o 7._o chapter_n of_o leviticus_fw-la and_o other_o place_n as_o also_o for_o cessation_n of_o plauge_n or_o other_o punishment_n as_o be_v specify_v in_o the_o 2._o of_o king_n and_o last_o chapter_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o temporal_a life_n of_o man_n which_o onias_n the_o high_a priest_n practise_v in_o the_o fact_n of_o heliodorus_n 2._o machab._n 3._o and_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o life_n of_o darius_n and_o his_o child_n esdras_n and_o 6._o chapter_n what_o christian_a man_n can_v with_o reason_n deny_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n wherein_o all_o
these_o sacrifice_n be_v to_o be_v perfect_o fulfil_v may_v not_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o all_o or_o any_o one_o of_o these_o or_o like_a benefit_n especial_o see_v that_o it_o have_v be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o all_o age_n as_o appeareth_z by_o all_o the_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church_n service_n book_n of_o ancient_a time_n where_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o offer_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o god_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v set_v down_o not_o only_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o also_o for_o the_o obtain_v those_o other_o particular_a blessing_n comfort_n and_o consolation_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o say_a book_n at_o large_a 12._o s._n augustine_n so_o constant_o believe_v this_o sacrifice_n s._n augustine_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o sacrifice_n doctrine_n that_o in_o his_o 57_o question_n upon_o leviticus_fw-la he_o say_v by_o these_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n this_o only_a sacrifice_n the_o new_a be_v signify_v wherein_o be_v true_a remission_n of_o sin_n from_o take_v the_o blood_n of_o which_o sacrament_n in_o nourrishment_n there_o be_v no_o restraint_n but_o rather_o a_o exhortation_n unto_o all_o to_o drink_v it_o and_o speak_v of_o the_o practice_n and_o use_v of_o this_o mean_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n of_o the_o 9_o book_n of_o his_o confession_n say_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o redemption_n be_v offer_v for_o his_o mother_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o her_o sin_n after_o her_o death_n and_o yield_n the_o reason_n why_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v offer_v for_o she_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n add_v all_o though_o she_o be_v so_o quicken_v and_o renew_v in_o christ_n whilst_o she_o remain_v yet_o among_o we_o that_o thy_o name_n be_v praise_v both_o in_o her_o belief_n and_o life_n yet_o i_o dare_v not_o affirm_v that_o after_o thou_o have_v regenerate_v she_o by_o her_o baptism_n there_o issue_v no_o word_n out_o of_o her_o mouth_n against_o thy_o commandment_n and_o in_o the_o 25._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n he_o say_v that_o at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o universal_a judgement_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a that_o some_o be_v purge_v by_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o judgement_n because_o then_o no_o man_n can_v offer_v sacrifice_n for_o his_o sin_n show_v that_o the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n shall_v not_o cease_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o then_o add_v say_v for_o all_o who_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o their_o sin_n be_v common_o in_o the_o sin_n for_o the_o remission_n whereof_o they_o do_v offer_v sacrifice_n and_o when_o they_o have_v offer_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n than_o their_o sin_n be_v forgive_v 13._o s._n cyprian_n live_v about_o the_o year_n 240._o yet_o sacrifice_n s._n cyprian_n and_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o sacrifice_n speak_v of_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o his_o time_n in_o his_o 66._o epistle_n say_v the_o bishopp_n which_o be_v before_o we_o have_v religioussy_a and_o prudent_o decree_v that_o none_o of_o the_o brethren_n depart_v out_o of_o this_o life_n shall_v name_v for_o his_o executor_n or_o overseer_n a_o clergy_n man_n and_o if_o any_o do_v there_o shall_v be_v no_o offering_n for_o he_o nor_o sacrifice_n celebrate_v for_o his_o ease_n or_o rest_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 121._o s._n alexander_n the_o first_o be_v make_v bishop_n of_o rome_n yet_o he_o in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o epistle_n unto_o all_o catholic_n repeat_v the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n present_o add_v say_v crime_n and_o sin_n be_v blot_v out_o by_o offer_v these_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n and_o to_o conclude_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o offering_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v so_o general_o believe_v to_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o in_o the_o most_o flourish_a time_n of_o the_o church_n a●●ius_n be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n for_o deny_v among_o other_o thing_n the_o offering_n of_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a as_o wittness_v epiphanius_n in_o his_o recapitulation_n of_o all_o heresy_n s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 53._o heresy_n of_o his_o book_n of_o heresy_n and_o s._n damascene_fw-la in_o his_o book_n of_o 100_o heresy_n and_o if_o it_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o believe_v that_o we_o may_v offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o pain_n and_o punishment_n due_a unto_o some_o sin_n after_o death_n no_o man_n can_v with_o reason_n deny_v but_o that_o also_o it_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o same_o church_n to_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o live_n 14._o and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o blessing_n sacrifice_n offer_v for_o other_o blessing_n sin_n but_o also_o for_o obtain_v of_o other_o benefit_n tertullian_n in_o his_o book_n to_o scapula_n say_v that_o in_o his_o time_n they_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o the_o health_n of_o the_o emperor_n as_o we_o do_v many_o time_n for_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n king_n charles_n his_o queen_n and_o child_n s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 8._o chapter_n of_o 22._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n relate_v how_o one_o of_o his_o priest_n offer_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o a_o house_n that_o be_v possess_v with_o evil_a spirit_n and_o the_o wicked_a spirit_n cease_v to_o trouble_v the_o house_n any_o more_o 15._o s._n chrysostome_n upon_o the_o 95._o psalm_n set_v down_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o sacrifice_n s._n chrysostome_n of_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o offer_v sacrifice_n offer_v sacrifice_n say_v in_o every_o place_n be_v altar_n and_o doctrine_n this_o god_n foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n for_o express_v the_o ecclesiastical_a sincerity_n and_o manifest_v the_o ingratitude_n of_o the_o jew_n he_o say_v unto_o they_o i_o have_v no_o will_n in_o you_o say_v the_o lord_n omnipotent_a neither_o will_v i_o receive_v host_n from_o your_o hand_n for_o from_o the_o rysi_n of_o the_o sun_n unto_o the_o go_v down_o my_o name_n be_v glorify_v among_o the_o gentill_n and_o in_o every_o place_n sacrifice_n be_v offer_v to_o my_o name_n and_o a_o pure_a sacrifice_n see_v how_o full_o and_o plain_o he_o have_v interpret_v the_o mystical_a table_n which_o be_v the_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n and_o call_v pure_a incense_n the_o holy_a prayer_n which_o be_v offer_v with_o the_o sacrifice_n for_o this_o incense_n do_v recreate_v god_n not_o that_o which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o root_n of_o the_o earth_n but_o that_o which_o be_v breathe_v from_o a_o pure_a heart_n let_v my_o prayer_n therefore_o be_v deliver_v as_o incense_v in_o they_o sight_n do_v thou_o see_v how_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o this_o angelical_a sacrifice_n to_o shine_v most_o bright_o in_o every_o place_n do_v thou_o not_o see_v how_o neither_o the_o altar_n nor_o the_o canticle_n be_v comprehend_v within_o any_o limit_n in_o every_o place_n incense_n be_v offer_v to_o my_o name_n therefore_o most_o certain_o the_o principal_a mystical_a table_n and_o the_o heavenly_a and_o the_o most_o venerable_a host_n be_v the_o pure_a sacrifice_n there_o be_v also_o among_o we_o diverse_a kind_n of_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o law_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n have_v diverse_a host_n some_o for_o sin_n other_o which_o be_v call_v holocauste_n other_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n other_o of_o health_n other_o for_o the_o cleanse_n of_o leper_n brief_o there_o be_v other_o and_o many_o and_o diverse_a for_o those_o who_o be_v censure_v to_o innumerable_a expiation_n great_a be_v the_o number_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o above_o measure_n all_o which_o the_o new_a grace_n enter_v upon_o do_v comprehend_v in_o one_o sacrifice_n by_o appoint_v one_o and_o a_o true_a host_n thus_o s._n chrysostome_n with_o s._n chrysostome_n agree_v s._n leo_n in_o his_o 8._o sermon_n upon_o the_o passion_n say_v now_o o_o lord_n the_o carnal_a sacrifice_n cease_v the_o one_o oblation_n of_o thy_o body_n and_o blood_n do_v fulfil_v the_o diversity_n
of_o host_n in_o the_o old_a law_n and_o as_o there_o be_v one_o sacrifice_n for_o all_o the_o victime_n of_o the_o old_a law_n so_o now_o there_o be_v one_o kingdom_n of_o all_o nation_n whereby_o we_o see_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n may_v be_v offer_v to_o god_n for_o the_o obtain_v of_o all_o or_o any_o of_o those_o blessing_n or_o benefit_n which_o be_v assign_v unto_o all_o or_o any_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n or_o law_n of_o nature_n because_o they_o be_v all_o fulfil_v in_o this_o one_o and_o healthful_a sacrifice_n to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n concern_v sacrifice_n 16._o and_o by_o this_o sacrifice_n appear_v the_o beauty_n necessity_n the_o beauty_n of_o the_o church_n in_o offer_v sacrifice_n for_o her_o necessity_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o that_o disperse_a throughout_o the_o world_n not_o only_o she_o daily_o offer_v herself_o to_o god_n with_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o commemoration_n of_o his_o passion_n but_o also_o humble_o prefer_v all_o her_o petition_n and_o prayer_n desire_v that_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o sacrifice_n of_o her_o dear_a lord_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o sin_n the_o manner_n how_o sacrifice_n obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n the_o gift_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n there_o present_a god_n will_v bestow_v upon_o her_o child_n grace_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o penance_n for_o their_o sin_n or_o the_o like_a and_o if_o they_o put_v no_o impediment_n on_o their_o part_n god_n bestow_v upon_o they_o grace_n to_o do_v penance_n for_o their_o sin_n and_o therefore_o say_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o unto_o remission_n of_o sin_n math._n 26._o even_o ●o●_n as_o many_o as_o put_v no_o impediment_n or_o stop_n to_o the_o grace_n and_o gift_n of_o penance_n which_o shall_v be_v obtain_v by_o it_o or_o to_o the_o other_o blessing_n which_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o say_a sacrifice_n they_o shall_v desire_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n suppose_v they_o be_v expedient_a for_o the_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n wherein_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o difficulty_n among_o christian_a man_n consider_v that_o they_o be_v promise_v by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n when_o grace_n and_o favour_n do_v not_o so_o much_o abound_v prayer_n sacrifice_n and_o prayer_n of_o more_o force_n then_o only_a prayer_n and_o that_o our_o lord_n say_v of_o prayer_n only_o ask_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v you_o for_o every_o one_o that_o ask_v receave_v math._n 7._o how_o much_o more_o then_o shall_v this_o be_v verify_v when_o fervent_a prayer_n be_v join_v with_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o commemoration_n of_o his_o passion_n by_o which_o god_n have_v reconcile_v all_o thing_n unto_o himself_o coloss_n 1._o 20._o chap._n v._o how_o our_o saviour_n command_v that_o we_o shall_v give_v to_o god_n for_o we_o the_o same_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o he_o give_v and_o shed_v and_o how_o all_o the_o host_n offer_v in_o sacrifice_n or_o give_v in_o the_o communion_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o 1._o when_o our_o saviour_n institute_v the_o communion_n and_o give_v commandment_n this_o our_o saviour_n say_v not_o preach_v this_o or_o believe_v this_o but_o do_v this_o to_o the_o apostle_n to_o make_v a_o commemoration_n of_o he_o he_o say_v not_o as_o puritan_n will_v have_v it_o preach_v this_o or_o believe_v this_o or_o apprehend_v i_o in_o heaven_n by_o faith_n for_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o every_o one_o before_o he_o come_v either_o to_o consecrat_v or_o receive_v the_o communion_n believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o his_o faith_n but_o take_v bread_n he_o give_v thanks_o and_o break_v and_o give_v to_o they_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o do_v this_o in_o commemoration_n of_o i_o and_o so_o command_v they_o to_o consecrat_v his_o body_n and_o to_o give_v his_o body_n to_o god_n for_o we_o in_o commemoration_n of_o he_o and_o not_o another_o body_n or_o thing_n whereupon_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o body_n which_o our_o saviour_n give_v then_o to_o god_n for_o we_o and_o the_o body_n which_o ever_o since_o have_v be_v give_v to_o god_n for_o we_o or_o shall_v be_v give_v for_o we_o or_o receive_v in_o the_o catholic_n communion_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n be_v all_o one_o body_n host_n or_o thing_n though_o give_v to_o god_n for_o we_o and_o receive_v at_o diverse_a time_n and_o in_o diverse_a place_n by_o a_o multitude_n of_o people_n insomuch_o as_o all_o the_o christian_n catholic_n priest_n who_o offer_v sacrifice_n and_o all_o the_o christian_n catholic_n communicant_n who_o either_o have_v or_o shall_v receive_v or_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o as_o much_o as_o concern_v the_o host_n or_o thing_n offer_v in_o sacrifice_n or_o receive_v do_v offer_v and_o receive_v all_o one_o host_n all_o one_o body_n even_o the_o same_o which_o our_o saviour_n then_o give_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o same_o which_o now_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n in_o heaven_n though_o not_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n but_o under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n 2._o for_o the_o better_a understanding_n whereof_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o observe_v that_o these_o word_n sacrifice_n oblation_n gift_n communion_n etc._n etc._n be_v sometime_o take_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n for_o the_o thing_n sacrifice_v offer_v give_v or_o communicate_v and_o sometime_o for_o the_o action_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n oblation_n gift_n or_o communion_n so_o when_o we_o say_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n oblation_n gift_n or_o communion_n of_o all_o christian_a diverse_a the_o thing_n sacrifice_v be_v one_o every_o where_o though_o the_o action_n be_v diverse_a catholic_n be_v all_o one_o we_o intend_v the_o thing_n sacrifice_v offer_v or_o give_v and_o not_o the_o action_n for_o the_o action_n whereby_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v consecrate_v offer_v or_o give_v be_v diverse_a and_o many_o even_o as_o many_o as_o there_o be_v man_n who_o consecrate_v or_o receive_v and_o so_o the_o sacrifice_n oblation_n host_n and_o communion_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v many_o though_o the_o substantial_a thing_n consecrate_v offer_v and_o give_v in_o the_o communion_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o body_n according_a to_o these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n say_v do_v this_o the_o same_o which_o he_o then_o do_v who_o consecrate_v his_o true_a and_o real_a body_n and_o give_v it_o to_o god_n for_o we_o and_o unto_o every_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o communion_n if_o we_o will_v believe_v the_o express_a text_n itself_o 3._o and_o this_o s._n paul_n excellent_o explicate_v out_o of_o the_o 39_o psal_n say_v christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n he_o say_v host_n and_o oblation_n thou_o will_v not_o but_o abody_o thou_o have_v fit_v to_o i_o holocaust_n for_o sin_n do_v not_o please_v thou_o then_o say_v i_o behold_v i_o come_v in_o the_o head_n of_o the_o law._n one_o body_n in_o place_n of_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law._n book_n it_o be_v write_v of_o i_o that_o i_o may_v do_v thy_o will_n o_o god_n say_v before_o because_o host_n and_o oblation_n and_o holocau_v and_o for_o sin_n thou_o will_v not_o neither_o do_v they_o please_v thou_o which_o be_v offer_v according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n then_o say_v i_o behold_v i_o come_v that_o i_o may_v do_v thy_o will_n o_o god_n he_o take_v away_o the_o first_o that_o he_o may_v establish_v that_o which_o follow_v thus_o s._n paul_n heb._n 10._o 5._o where_o the_o apostle_n do_v excellent_o show_v that_o when_o the_o host_n oblation_n holocau_v and_o sin_n offering_n which_o be_v use_v in_o the_o old_a law_n shall_v be_v abrogate_a and_o take_v away_o out_o of_o the_o church_n as_o they_o be_v at_o our_o saviour_n last_o supper_n after_o that_o he_o have_v eat_v the_o paschall_n lamb_n then_o present_o a_o begin_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n end_v present_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a begin_v body_n shall_v succeed_v in_o all_o their_o place_n of_o such_o excellency_n and_o perfection_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v worthy_a and_o fit_a to_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n which_o we_o find_v true_a by_o experience_n for_o assoon_o as_o our_o saviour_n have_v end_v the_o paschall_n lamb_n and_o in_o it_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n he_o present_o take_v bread_n and_o break_v and_o give_v thanks_o and_o say_v take_v you_o and_o eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o to_o god_n in_o place_n of_o all_o the_o
sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o establish_v the_o give_n of_o his_o body_n to_o god_n for_o we_o add_v do_v this_o in_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o and_o so_o as_o s._n paul_n here_o say_v he_o take_v away_o all_o the_o former_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n to_o establish_v the_o give_n of_o his_o body_n to_o god_n for_o we_o which_o be_v to_o follow_v after_o they_o be_v abrogate_a or_o end_v 4._o though_o in_o the_o old_a law_n there_o be_v many_o sacrifice_n holocau_v oblation_n and_o host_n yet_o in_o the_o new_a law_n all_o the_o sacrifice_n oblation_n and_o host_n shall_v be_v but_o one_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v a_o body_n thou_o have_v fit_v to_o i_o one_o body_n in_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a law_n though_o offer_v in_o every_o place_n among_o the_o convert_a church_n one_o host_n at_o the_o last_o supper_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n gentile_n as_o be_v foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n malachi_n which_o here_o also_o s._n paul_n further_a signifi_v say_v christ_n offer_v one_o host_n for_o sin_n for_o ever_o fit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n for_o by_o one_o oblation_n have_v he_o consummate_v for_o ever_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v show_v that_o in_o the_o new_a law_n there_o be_v not_o many_o host_n oblation_n or_o holocau_v to_o be_v offer_v but_o only_o one_o host_n the_o body_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o be_v give_v for_o we_o to_o god_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o upon_o the_o cross_n and_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o god_n for_o we_o in_o his_o church_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o to_o god_n do_v this_o for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o as_o s._n paul_n add_v until_o he_o come_v to_o judgement_n 1._o cor._n 11._o whereupon_o s._n augustin_n in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n say_v christ_n be_v the_o priest_n he_o it_o be_v that_o offer_v and_o he_o be_v the_o oblation_n the_o oblation_n christ_n both_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o oblation_n sacrament_n of_o which_o thing_n he_o will_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o he_o her_o head_n have_v learned_a to_o offer_v herself_o by_o he_o and_o of_o this_o sacrifice_n the_o many_o and_o diverse_a ancient_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v sign_n that_o whilst_o this_o one_o sacrifice_n be_v figure_v or_o set_v forth_o by_o many_o one_o thing_n may_v as_o it_o be_v be_v express_v by_o many_o word_n and_o be_v much_o commend_v without_o tediousness_n to_o this_o chief_a and_o true_a sacrifice_n all_o the_o false_a sacrifice_n have_v give_v place_n thus_o s._n augustin_n where_o the_o saint_n manifest_o and_o clear_o show_v that_o christ_n himself_o be_v the_o oblation_n in_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o church_n succeed_v in_o place_n of_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o old_a law_n and_o that_o the_o church_n which_o be_v his_o body_n have_v learned_a to_o offer_v herself_o by_o he_o to_o god_n in_o this_o one_o and_o yet_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o church_n which_o be_v the_o same_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v teach_v at_o this_o day_n 5._o moreover_o s._n augustin_n in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o the_o 17._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n recite_v this_o same_o place_n which_o s._n paul_n have_v before_o cite_v out_o of_o the_o 39_o psal_n say_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o this_o table_n be_v to_o begin_v to_o live_v for_o in_o another_o book_n which_o be_v call_v ecclesiaste_n he_o say_v there_o be_v no_o such_o good_a belong_v to_o man_n as_o that_o he_o shall_v eat_v and_o drink_v which_o we_o may_v easy_o understand_v to_o belong_v unto_o the_o be_v partaker_n of_o this_o table_n which_o the_o mediator_n himself_o or_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n do_v bring_v in_o of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o that_o sacrifice_n have_v succeed_v in_o place_n of_o all_o those_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o law._n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n succeed_v all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law._n be_v immolate_a in_o figure_n of_o this_o to_o come_v for_o which_o cause_n we_o also_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o voice_n of_o the_o same_o mediator_n speak_v by_o way_n of_o prophecy_n in_o the_o 39_o psalm_n sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n thou_o will_v not_o but_o a_o body_n thou_o have_v fit_v to_o i_o for_o in_o place_n of_o all_o these_o sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n of_o the_o old_a law_n his_o body_n be_v offer_v and_o administer_v to_o the_o communicant_n so_o s._n augustin_n where_o he_o show_v most_o plain_o that_o this_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v offer_v in_o sacrifice_n and_o deliver_v in_o the_o communion_n unto_o all_o the_o communicant_n again_o in_o his_o book_n upon_o the_o psalm_n expound_v these_o word_n of_o the_o 39_o psal_n allege_v here_o by_o s._n paul_n he_o say_v sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n thou_o will_v not_o what_o sacrifice_n christian_n be_v not_o without_o sacrifice_n then_o be_v we_o therefore_o in_o this_o time_n send_v away_o with_o out_o sacrifice_n god_n forbid_v but_o a_o body_n thou_o have_v fit_v to_o i_o therefore_o thou_o will_v not_o the_o other_o that_o thou_o may_v perfect_v this_o etc._n etc._n and_o so_o show_v that_o this_o body_n be_v that_o which_o be_v sacrifice_v and_o give_v in_o the_o communion_n add_v in_o this_o body_n we_o be_v of_o this_o body_n we_o be_v partaker_n that_o which_o we_o have_v receive_v we_o know_v and_o you_o that_o do_v not_o know_v shall_v know_v and_o when_o you_o have_v learn_v i_o pray_v to_o god_n that_o you_o may_v not_o take_v it_o to_o your_o condemnation_n for_o he_o that_o eat_v and_o drinck_v unworthy_o eat_v and_o drinck_v judgement_n to_o himself_o so_o s._n augustin_n 6._o primasius_n bishop_n of_o utica_n in_o africa_n and_o a_o disciple_n of_o s._n august_n upon_o the_o 10._o to_o the_o hebrew_n say_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n the_o host_n be_v one_o and_o not_o many_o though_o it_o be_v offer_v up_o by_o many_o in_o diverse_a place_n and_o at_o diverse_a time_n the_o divine_a power_n of_o the_o word_n time_n the_o sacrifice_n offer_v by_o many_o be_v one_o though_o offer_v in_o diverse_a place_n and_o at_o diverse_a time_n do_v make_v that_o there_o be_v not_o many_o sacrifice_n but_o one_o all_o though_o it_o be_v offer_v by_o many_o etc._n etc._n neither_o be_v there_o now_o one_o great_a sacrifice_n and_o a_o other_o lesser_a or_o one_o offer_v to_o day_n and_o another_o to_o morrow_n but_o always_o the_o selfsame_a have_v equal_a magnitude_n wherefore_o this_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n be_v one_o and_o not_o many_o for_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o because_o it_o be_v offer_v in_o many_o place_n there_o shall_v be_v many_o christ_n which_o god_n forbid_v one_o christ_n therefore_o be_v in_o all_o they_o places_z and_o as_o that_o which_o be_v offer_v every_o where_o be_v one_o body_n and_o not_o many_o body_n so_o also_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v one_o thus_o primasius_n 7._o and_o in_o like_a manner_n s._n chrysostome_n upon_o the_o 10._o to_o the_o heb._n say_v the_o holy_a oblation_n by_o what_o priest_n soever_o it_o be_v offer_v be_v the_o self_n same_o which_o christ_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n this_o have_v nothing_o less_o in_o it_o then_o that_o host_n all_o priest_n offer_v the_o same_o oblation_n or_o host_n have_v because_o man_n do_v not_o sanctify_v it_o but_o christ_n himself_o who_o before_o have_v consecrate_v that_o and_o in_o his_o 24._o hom._n upon_o the_o first_o to_o the_o corinthian_n speak_v of_o the_o christian_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o altar_n say_v this_o body_n when_o it_o be_v place_v in_o the_o manger_n be_v reverence_v magi._n the_o same_o body_n upon_o the_o altar_n which_o be_v in_o the_o manger_n and_o adore_v by_o the_o magi._n by_o the_o magi_n who_o though_o wicked_a and_o barbarous_a man_n by_o nation_n yet_o leave_v their_o country_n and_o home_n and_o undertake_v a_o long_a voyage_n and_o when_o they_o come_v they_o adore_v with_o great_a fear_n and_o tremble_v let_v we_o citizen_n of_o heaven_n imitate_v at_o least_o these_o barbarous_a people_n for_o they_o though_o they_o see_v he_o in_o a_o manger_n and_o in_o a_o cottage_n and_o not_o in_o such_o state_n as_o thou_o see_v he_o now_o yet_o they_o approach_v unto_o he_o wit_n great_a reverence_n and_o thou_o do_v not_o see_v he_o in_o a_o manger_n but_o upon_o
sacrament_n our_o saviour_n speak_v often_o of_o this_o sacrament_n often_o of_o this_o sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o sacrament_n and_o say_v upon_o diverse_a occasion_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o this_o chalice_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o many_o unto_o remission_n of_o sin_n this_o be_v the_o chalice_n the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o you_o as_o not_o only_o do_v witness_v the_o greek_n and_o latin_a bibles_n math._n 26._o mar._n 14._o luk._n 22._o 1._o cor._n 11._o and_o both_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_a father_n in_o their_o several_a work_n but_o also_o the_o practice_n of_o both_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_a church_n in_o their_o several_a liturgy_n or_o book_n of_o the_o consecration_n and_o administration_n of_o this_o sacrament_n and_o no_o where_o either_o in_o the_o greek_n or_o latin_a bibles_n or_o in_o the_o greek_n or_o latin_a father_n or_o in_o the_o ancient_a liturgy_n or_o sacrament_n sign_n never_o read_v among_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n book_n of_o the_o consecration_n and_o administration_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n read_v this_o be_v only_o a_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n or_o this_o do_v only_o signify_v my_o body_n as_o our_o adversary_n will_v have_v they_o to_o say_v or_o signify_v but_o every_o where_o both_o in_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_a bibles_n and_o in_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_a father_n and_o ancient_a book_n of_o consecration_n and_o administration_n of_o this_o sacrament_n where_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v read_v or_o allege_v they_o be_v read_v and_o allege_v this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n etc._n etc._n 2._o and_o though_o the_o grecian_n always_o in_o their_o tense_n the_o greek_n bibles_n read_v the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n in_o the_o present_a tense_n bibles_n and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o their_o book_n of_o the_o consecration_n of_o this_o sacrament_n and_o other_o book_n read_v the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n in_o the_o present_a tense_n as_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o or_o which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o and_z this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o and_o the_o latins_n for_o the_o most_o part_n both_o in_o their_o bible_n book_n of_o consecration_n and_o other_o book_n read_v they_o in_o the_o future_a tense_n as_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o and_o my_o blood_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o you_o yet_o neither_o of_o they_o find_v fault_n with_o the_o other_o or_o reprehend_v the_o diversity_n in_o read_v because_o our_o lord_n at_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n speak_v often_o of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o not_o only_o say_v that_o it_o be_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o he_o then_o give_v break_v and_o shed_v to_o god_n for_o we_o and_o deliver_v in_o the_o communion_n unto_o the_o apostle_n but_o also_o say_v that_o the_o same_o his_o body_n and_o prophet_n our_o saviour_n institute_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n blood_n shall_v be_v deliver_v and_o shed_v to_o god_n for_o we_o as_o a_o clean_a oblation_n or_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o church_n until_o he_o come_v to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n 3._o in_o the_o old_a law_n there_o be_v clean_o or_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n levit._n 2._o 1._o 4._o and_o 5._o levit._fw-la 5._o 11._o and_o these_o thing_n be_v donn_v in_o figure_n of_o we_o 1._o cor._n 10._o 6._o for_o the_o law_n bring_v nothing_o to_o perfection_n but_o a_o introduction_n to_o a_o better_a hope_n heb._n 7._o 19_o and_o the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o priest_n levite_n and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n or_o a_o clean_a oblation_n to_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o new_a law_n as_o isaie_v 61._o 6._o isaie_v 66._o 21._o jeremie_n 33._o 18._o psal_n 109._o 4._o daniel_n 9_o 27._o malachi_n 1._o 11._o and_o therefore_o our_o lord_n say_v of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o be_v give_v and_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o now_o and_o shall_v be_v give_v and_o shed_v for_o you_o in_o the_o commemoration_n of_o i_o to_o fulfil_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n concern_v priest_n levite_n and_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n 4._o the_o grecian_n in_o their_o bibles_n read_v always_o these_o word_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n in_o the_o present_a tense_n do_v demonstrate_v that_o our_o cross_n our_o saviour_n at_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o his_o boby_n as_o upon_o the_o cross_n lord_n at_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o give_v or_o break_v of_o his_o body_n or_o shed_v of_o his_o blood_n upon_o the_o cross_n but_o of_o his_o then_o break_v of_o his_o body_n and_o shed_v of_o his_o blood_n at_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o communion_n to_o the_o verify_n of_o his_o word_n speak_v in_o the_o present_a tense_n and_o the_o say_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n who_o affirm_v that_o he_o be_v then_o at_o his_o last_o supper_n both_o the_o priest_n and_o victim_n host_n or_o gift_n and_o both_o the_o banquet_n and_o the_o guest_n as_o of_o s._n cyprian_n in_o his_o 63._o epistle_n origen_n in_o his_o 35._o tract_n upon_o s._n matthew_n s._n gregory_n nissen_n in_o his_o oration_n of_o the_o resurrection_n s._n ambrose_n in_o his_o first_o preparation_n to_o mass_n s._n chrisostome_n in_o his_o 28._o homily_n upon_o the_o 1._o to_o the_o corinthian_n s._n hierome_n in_o his_o 2._o question_n of_o his_o 150._o epistle_n unto_o hedibia_n and_o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 80._o psalm_n and_o upon_o the_o 11._o chapter_n of_o osee_n s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o his_o 10._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n and_o in_o his_o 2._o sermon_n upon_o the_o 33._o psalm_n say_v christ_n carry_v himself_o after_o a_o certain_a manner_n when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n because_o he_o carry_v himself_o under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n neither_o be_v be_v his_o body_n break_v upon_o the_o cross_n as_o witness_v both_o sripture_n and_o father_n john_n 19_o 39_o exod_n 12._o 46._o s._n chrisostome_n upon_o the_o 10._o chapter_n of_o the_o 1._o to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o theophilact_fw-mi and_o oecumenus_n in_o the_o same_o place_n neither_o will_v our_o adversary_n be_v able_a to_o find_v these_o word_n be_v break_v put_v for_o shall_v be_v crucify_v in_o the_o whole_a bible_n for_o though_o the_o prophet_n isaie_v say_v he_o be_v bruise_v for_o our_o iniquity_n or_o as_o the_o septuagint_n read_v he_o be_v make_v infirm_a or_o weak_a for_o our_o iniquity_n yet_o no_o where_n do_v they_o say_v he_o be_v break_v upon_o the_o cross_n or_o put_v these_o word_n be_v break_v for_o shall_v be_v crucify_v as_o both_o one_o because_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o break_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o can_v be_v contrary_a unto_o themselves_o neither_o be_v the_o time_n of_o our_o lord_n passion_n then_o begin_v as_o our_o adversary_n also_o confess_v and_o therefore_o our_o lord_n can_v not_o then_o say_v and_o say_v true_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o intend_v that_o it_o be_v break_v for_o they_o upon_o the_o cross_n or_o in_o his_o passion_n 5._o neither_o be_v it_o any_o way_n probable_a that_o our_o lord_n who_o be_v truth_n itself_o and_o descend_v down_o testament_n not_o probable_a that_o our_o lord_n will_v use_v equivocation_n in_o his_o last_o will_n and_o testament_n from_o heaven_n to_o teach_v man_n the_o way_n of_o truth_n shall_v in_o the_o make_n of_o his_o testament_n institute_v of_o a_o sacrament_n and_o administrate_v of_o the_o communion_n and_o go_v to_o his_o passion_n not_o only_o equivocate_v and_o put_v the_o present_a tense_n so_o often_o for_o the_o future_a and_o use_v analogy_n of_o time_n in_o a_o thing_n which_o do_v concern_v all_o man_n salvation_n contrary_a to_o the_o common_a custom_n
not_o upon_o the_o cross_n as_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o now_o and_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o to_o god_n in_o the_o commemoration_n of_o i_o whereupon_o s._n chrysostome_n in_o his_o 24._o homily_n upon_o the_o 1._o to_o the_o corinthian_n say_v to_o the_o communicant_n in_o the_o holy_a communion_n thou_o be_v not_o nourrish_v of_o one_o body_n and_o he_o of_o a_o other_o but_o we_o be_v all_o nourrish_v of_o the_o same_o body_n one_o and_o the_o same_o substantial_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v in_o all_o the_o christian_a communion_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n by_o the_o will_n and_o power_n of_o our_o lord_n 11._o somme_n also_o of_o the_o greek_n father_n allege_v tense_n some_o greeck_n father_n read_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n in_o both_o tense_n these_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n in_o the_o future_a tense_n as_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o and_o yet_o also_o understand_v thereby_o that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substantial_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o god_n for_o we_o in_o all_o christian_a sacrifice_n and_o be_v administrate_v in_o the_o communion_n to_o all_o the_o communicant_n as_o s._n irenaeus_n who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 180._o in_o the_o 23._o chapter_n of_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o heresy_n s._n dionysius_n alexandrinus_n who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n 250._o in_o his_o answer_n unto_o the_o objection_n of_o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la a_o heretic_n set_v down_o in_o the_o 3._o tom_n of_o bibliotheca_fw-la patrum_fw-la theodoret_n upon_o the_o 1._o to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o 11._o chapter_n s._n chrysostome_n in_o his_o 83._o homily_n upon_o s._n matthew_n etc._n etc._n 12._o the_o latin_a bibles_n more_o manifest_o to_o demonstrate_v unto_o all_o man_n that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n speak_v diverse_a time_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o that_o the_o same_o his_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n may_v be_v in_o diverse_a place_n and_o under_o diverse_a dimension_n sense_n the_o latin_n read_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n in_o both_o sense_n at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o time_n read_v those_o word_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n in_o both_o tense_n and_o say_v of_o the_o body_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o 10._o luk_n 22._o and_o also_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o this_o do_v you_o for_o the_o commemoration_n of_o i_o 1._o cor._n 11._o plain_o and_o manifest_o to_o show_v that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substantial_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n both_o be_v then_o give_v to_o god_n for_o we_o and_o shall_v at_o all_o time_n be_v give_v to_o god_n for_o we_o when_o we_o make_v commemoration_n of_o our_o lord_n 13._o so_o likewise_o the_o greek_n in_o their_o bibles_n sacrament_n no_o contradiction_n between_v the_o greek_n and_o latin_a bibles_n in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n read_v always_o these_o word_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o chalice_n in_o the_o present_a tense_n and_o the_o latin_n without_o contradict_v or_o gain_n say_v what_o the_o greek_n read_v do_v always_o read_v they_o in_o their_o bible_n in_o the_o future_a tense_n math._n 26._o mark_n 14._o luk._n 22._o manifest_o to_o declare_v unto_o all_o christian_n that_o the_o same_o substantial_a blood_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o be_v shed_v to_o god_n for_o we_o in_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o commemoration_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o same_o substantial_a blood_n shall_v also_o be_v shed_v to_o god_n for_o we_o in_o all_o the_o commemoration_n which_o we_o shall_v right_o make_v of_o he_o because_o god_n speak_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substantial_a blood_n say_v so_o 14._o when_o our_o lord_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o and_o this_o be_v the_o chalice_n the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o institution_n of_o his_o commemoration_n and_o when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o and_z this_o be_v the_o chalice_n the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o you_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o commemoration_n which_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n shall_v make_v of_o he_o in_o his_o church_n and_o so_o give_v a_o command_n not_o only_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n shall_v break_v and_o shed_v the_o same_o his_o true_a real_a and_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n to_o god_n for_o we_o in_o the_o commemoration_n blood_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n nothing_o be_v to_o be_v offer_v in_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n or_o receive_v in_o the_o communion_n but_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o they_o be_v to_o make_v of_o he_o but_o also_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o break_v or_o shed_v any_o other_o body_n or_o blood_n but_o he_o in_o the_o commemoration_n which_o they_o be_v to_o make_v of_o he_o and_o so_o make_v a_o law_n that_o only_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n shall_v be_v offer_v to_o god_n in_o sacrifice_n and_o receive_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o christian_n and_o nothing_o else_o and_o abrogate_a the_o priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n and_o establish_v a_o priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n in_o his_o church_n to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n whereupon_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o time_n decree_v in_o their_o 3._o canon_n say_v if_o any_o bishop_n or_o priest_n contrary_a to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v offer_v any_o thing_n upon_o a_o altar_n as_o honey_n milk_n or_o cider_n instead_o of_o wine_n or_o any_o compound_a thing_n or_o any_o kind_n of_o bird_n or_o beast_n or_o bean_n or_o pease_n transgress_v our_o lord_n constitution_n let_v he_o be_v degrade_v 15._o the_o old_a law_n as_o s._n paul_n say_v bring_v nothing_o to_o perfection_n but_o a_o introduction_n to_o a_o better_a hope_n heb._n 7._o 19_o to_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o new_a where_o jesus_n be_v make_v a_o surety_n to_o a_o better_a testament_n heb._n 7._o 22._o whereupon_o our_o saviour_n come_v to_o perform_v this_o hope_n and_o better_a testament_n change_v all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n which_o be_v law._n christ_n change_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law._n in_o sheep_n bullock_n bird_n etc._n etc._n into_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o his_o own_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o therefore_o say_v at_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o eucharist_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o and_o also_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o most_o plain_o and_o manifest_o to_o express_v the_o change_n of_o all_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n into_o the_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o declare_v his_o prohibition_n to_o offer_v any_o thing_n in_o sacrifice_n unto_o god_n but_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o therefore_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o you_o to_o prohibit_v the_o offering_n of_o any_o thing_n in_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n but_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o the_o same_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o he_o then_o offer_v or_o give_v to_o god_n whereupon_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o his_o 17._o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n say_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n succeed_v in_o place_n of_o all_o those_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n again_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n for_o all_o those_o sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n of_o the_o old_a law_n christ_n body_n be_v offer_v and_o administrate_v in_o the_o communion_n to_o the_o communicant_n and_o in_o his_o 2._o sermon_n upon_o the_o 33._o psalm_n he_o say_v in_o the_o old_a law_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o aron_n but_o afterward_o christ_n institute_v a_o sacrifice_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o the_o like_a have_v s._n cyprian_n in_o his_o 63._o epistle_n to_o cicilianus_fw-la s._n ambrose_n in_o the_o 4._o chapter_n of_o his_o 5._o book_n of_o sacrament_n s._n hierome_n in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o his_o 17._o epistle_n and_o in_o his_o 126._o epistle_n s._n ephanius_n in_o his_o 55._o heresy_n theodoret_n upon_o the_o 109._o psalm_n s._n leo_n in_o his_o 8._o sermon_n upon_o the_o passion_n and_o s._n
damascene_fw-la in_o his_o 14._o chapter_n of_o his_o 4._o book_n fidei_fw-la orthodoxae_fw-la 16._o and_o whereas_o our_o adversary_n say_v that_o god_n can_v put_v one_o and_o the_o same_o substantial_a do_v god_n can_v best_o tell_v what_o he_o can_v do_v body_n and_o blood_n in_o diverse_a place_n and_o under_o diverse_a dimension_n at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o time_n who_o can_v better_a tell_v what_o god_n can_v do_v than_o god_n himself_o and_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o catholic_a father_n who_o have_v treat_v of_o this_o subject_n and_o see_v that_o god_n say_v it_o be_v his_o body_n which_o he_o deliver_v in_o the_o communion_n and_o all_o christian_n who_o live_v before_o luther_n repute_v heretic_n to_o both_o party_n only_o except_v believe_v it_o to_o be_v his_o body_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o 3._o chapter_n what_o christian_n can_v doubt_v of_o it_o 17._o the_o latin_a father_n to_o prevent_v the_o infidelity_n of_o our_o adversary_n in_o this_o point_n do_v also_o in_o they_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_a father_n allege_v the_o word_n of_o the_o ●nstitution●_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o our_o lord_n speak_v they_o their_o other_o work_n and_o book_n read_v the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o bless_a sacrament_n sometime_o in_o the_o present_a tense_n and_o also_o sometime_o in_o the_o future_a tense_n and_o yet_o do_v not_o contradict_v one_o another_o or_o find_v fault_n at_o the_o differ_v and_o diversity_n of_o read_v because_o our_o lord_n at_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n speak_v many_o time_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o so_o according_o as_o he_o speak_v of_o they_o they_o repeat_v his_o word_n and_o allege_v they_o sometime_o in_o the_o present_a tense_n and_o sometime_o in_o the_o future_a tense_n as_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 24._o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr peccatorum_fw-la meritis_fw-la s._n hierome_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 1._o cor._n 11._o s._n ambrose_n upon_o the_o 22._o of_o s._n luk._n s._n cyprian_n in_o his_o 63._o epistle_n and_o s._n alexander_n in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o epistle_n unto_o all_o catholic_n yet_o s._n alexander_n be_v make_v bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n 121._o and_o though_o these_o aforesaid_a father_n in_o the_o place_n above_o say_v allege_v the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n in_o the_o future_a tense_n yet_o they_o all_o as_o it_o be_v with_o one_o voice_n affirm_v that_o in_o these_o word_n our_o lord_n institute_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n in_o commemoration_n of_o he_o in_o his_o church_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o the_o 13._o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o part_n 18._o and_o to_o conclude_v it_o be_v so_o manifest_a unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o adversary_n that_o our_o lord_n lord_n our_o adversary_n corruption_n of_o the_o testament_n of_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n give_v his_o body_n to_o god_n for_o we_o and_o shed_v his_o blood_n and_o that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o his_o word_n and_o will_v may_v be_v at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o time_n in_o diverse_a place_n and_o under_o diverse_a dimension_n that_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o can_v find_v any_o mean_n how_o they_o may_v avoid_v or_o disprove_v it_o but_o by_o disannul_v corrupt_a and_o add_v to_o the_o last_o will_n and_o testament_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o by_o interpret_n my_o body_n sign_n or_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n be_v shall_v break_a crucify_a or_o the_o like_a by_o which_o mean_n they_o may_v prove_v any_o thing_n true_a be_v it_o never_o so_o false_a and_o any_o thing_n false_a be_v it_o never_o so_o true_a and_o their_o error_n here_o in_o be_v so_o much_o more_o the_o great_a for_o that_o they_o practise_v it_o upon_o the_o last_o will_n and_o testament_n of_o our_o lord_n when_o s._n paul_n say_v a_o man_n testament_n be_v confirm_v no_o man_n disannul_v or_o add_v thereunto_o gal._n 3._o 15._o and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o diverse_a place_n and_o under_o diverse_a dimension_n in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n chap._n vii_o how_o our_o saviour_n be_v chief_a priest_n or_o agent_n in_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n and_o administer_a sacrament_n 1._o to_o let_v thou_o understand_v dear_a reader_n how_o our_o saviour_n be_v in_o heaven_n do_v priest_n christ_n head_n of_o his_o church_n and_o chief_a priest_n and_o shall_v offer_v upon_o earth_n unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o god_n the_o father_n and_o be_v a_o chief_a and_o high_a priest_n upon_o earth_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o word_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o observe_v first_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v that_o christ_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n himself_o the_o saviour_n of_o his_o body_n eph._n 5._o 23._o second_o that_o our_o saviour_n be_v chief_a or_o high_a priest_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n according_a to_o s._n paul_n heb._n 5._o 5._o 9_o so_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v well_o do_v by_o mortal_a priest_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v do_v by_o his_o authority_n and_o power_n give_v unto_o mortal_a priest_n his_o minister_n christ_n whatsoever_o be_v right_o do_v in_o the_o church_n be_v chief_o do_v by_o christ_n and_o servant_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n say_v paul_n the_o servant_n of_o jesus-christ_n rom._n 1._o 1._o again_o what_o be_v apollo_n and_o what_o be_v paul_n the_o minister_n of_o he_o in_o who_o you_o believe_v and_o to_o every_o one_o as_o our_o lord_n have_v give_v i_o plant_v apollo_n water_v but_o god_n give_v the_o increase_n 1._o cor._n 3._o 4._o three_o that_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o christ_n jesus_n be_v always_o invisible_o present_a at_o all_o the_o action_n of_o mortal_a priest_n his_o minister_n and_o servant_n chief_o and_o principal_o effect_v and_o do_v whatsoever_o they_o do_v right_o or_o well_o in_o his_o church_n according_a to_o his_o word_n say_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n even_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n math._n 28._o 20._o again_o neither_o he_o that_o plant_v be_v any_o thing_n nor_o he_o that_o water_v but_o he_o that_o give_v the_o increase_n god_n 1._o cor._n 3._o 7._o so_o that_o when_o mortal_a bishopp_n or_o priest_n who_o be_v right_o ordain_v do_v offer_v sacrifice_n or_o administer_v sacrament_n in_o church_n of_o god_n it_o be_v christ_n jesus_n that_o chief_o and_o principal_o as_o head_n of_o his_o church_n and_o high_a priest_n do_v offer_v the_o sacrifice_n and_o administer_v sacrament_n christ_n by_o his_o omnipotency_n work_v the_o affect_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n the_o sacrament_n and_o by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o his_o power_n work_v the_o exchange_n fruit_n or_o effect_n they_o have_v or_o do_v produce_v whereupon_o s._n john_n say_v christ_n be_v he_o that_o baptize_v john_n 1._o 33._o again_o jesus_n abode_n with_o the_o apostle_n and_o baptize_v io._n 3._o 22._o howbeit_o as_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v jesus_n do_v not_o baptize_v but_o bis_fw-la apostles_n io._n 4._o 6._o so_o our_o saviour_n say_v unto_o his_o apostle_n receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sin_n you_o forgive_v they_o be_v forgive_v john_n 20._o 21._o 22._o yet_o god_n say_v i_o be_o i_o be_o he_o that_o take_v clean_o away_o thy_o iniquity_n isa_n 43._o 25._o isa_n 44._o 22._o jer._n 31._o 34._o so_o when_o bishopp_n and_o priest_n right_o ordain_v do_v offer_v sacrifice_n and_o consecrate_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n it_o be_v our_o lord_n himself_o who_o chief_o do_v offer_v sacrifice_n according_a to_o his_o former_a word_n before_o allege_v and_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o 4._o sermon_n of_o the_o innocent_n say_v what_o cann_v be_v more_o reverend_a or_o more_o honourable_a then_o to_o rest_v under_o that_o altar_n upon_o which_o sacrifice_n be_v celebrate_v unto_o god_n in_o which_o our_o lord_n be_v the_o priest_n according_a as_o he_o say_v thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o 2._o as_o god_n say_v be_v light_n make_v and_o by_o the_o omnipotency_n word_n similitude_n of_o god_n operation_n by_o his_o word_n of_o his_o worp_n ligt_n be_v make_v and_o continue_v in_o his_o function_n and_o operation_n even_o until_o this_o day_n and_o as_o god_n say_v lead_v the_o earth_n shoot_v forth_o green_a herb_n and_o such_o as_o may_v seed_v and_o fruit_n tree_n yield_n fruit_n after_o his_o kind_n etc._n etc._n and_o by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o
his_o word_n it_o be_v so_o donn_v and_o the_o earth_n bring_v forth_o green_a herb_n such_o as_o see_v according_a to_o his_o kind_n and_o tree_n that_o bear_v fruit_n and_o shall_v do_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n even_o so_o in_o the_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n our_o saviour_n take_v bread_n bless_a and_o break_v and_o give_v to_o the_o apostle_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o do_v this_o for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o and_o by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n word_n the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n right_o ordain_v receive_v power_n and_o authority_n to_o give_v his_o body_n even_o that_o which_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n for_o we_o and_o shall_v have_v power_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n as_o it_o do_v with_o the_o light_n to_o shine_v and_o the_o earth_n to_o shoot_v forth_o green_a herb_n and_o tree_n 3._o s._n justine_n martyr_n who_o live_v with_o the_o apostle_n scholar_n and_o present_o after_o the_o apostle_n sacrament_n s._n justine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n time_n in_o his_o 2._o apology_n which_o he_o make_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o christian_n unto_o antoninus_n pius_fw-la the_o emperor_n senate_n and_o people_n of_o rome_n declare_v unto_o we_o what_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o christian_n of_o these_o primitive_a day_n in_o this_o point_n say_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v make_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n by_o the_o word_n of_o prayer_n proceed_v from_o he_o at_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n for_o the_o apostle_n say_v he_o in_o their_o commentary_n which_o be_v call_v their_o ghospell_n have_v relate_v unto_o we_o that_o jesus_n have_v ordain_v they_o to_o do_v so_o that_o he_o take_v bread_n and_o make_v it_o the_o eucharist_n he_o say_v do_v this_o for_o a_o commemoration_n of_o i_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o take_v likewise_o the_o chalice_n and_o make_v it_o the_o eucharist_n he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n thus_o s._n justine_n where_o he_o show_v that_o in_o the_o infancy_n of_o the_o church_n the_o faithful_a believe_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v make_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o his_o word_n and_o prayer_n speak_v at_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n as_o chief_a agent_n in_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n and_o in_o the_o consecration_n thereof_o 4._o s._n irenaeus_n in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o his_o 5._o book_n of_o heresy_n say_v when_o the_o mix_a chalice_n and_o the_o bread_n break_v do_v perceive_v the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v make_v the_o eucharist_n of_o the_o blood_n and_o body_n of_o christ_n again_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n receive_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v make_v the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v the_o body_n presence_n how_o constant_o in_o s._n irenaeus_n time_n they_o believe_v in_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n thus_o s._n irenaeus_n who_o live_v with_o s._n polycarpe_n scholar_n to_o s._n john_n the_o evangelist_n and_o in_o his_o time_n when_o as_o yet_o some_o of_o the_o apostle_n scholar_n be_v live_v and_o the_o action_n of_o our_o saviwere_n fresh_a in_o the_o memory_n of_o man_n the_o reality_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v so_o universal_o and_o constant_o believe_v to_o be_v in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n or_o eucharist_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o only_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o his_o word_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o his_o word_n that_o in_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o heresy_n cap._n 34._o he_o allege_v against_o certain_a heretic_n who_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o real_a be_v of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n or_o eucharist_n by_o his_o word_n to_o prove_v thereby_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o true_a son_n of_o god_n who_o by_o his_o word_n can_v effect_v it_o and_o make_v good_a what_o he_o say_v which_o otherwise_o he_o can_v not_o do_v unless_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n say_v how_o will_v it_o be_v manifest_a to_o these_o heretic_n that_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o the_o bread_n upon_o which_o thanks_n be_v give_v be_v the_o body_n of_o their_o lord_n and_o the_o chalice_n his_o blood_n if_o they_o do_v not_o say_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o builder_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o word_n by_o which_o tree_n bear_v fruit_n fountain_n flow_v the_o earth_n first_o do_v give_v the_o blade_n afterward_o the_o ear_n and_o then_o full_a wheat_n in_o the_o ear_n again_o how_o do_v they_o say_v that_o the_o flesh_n do_v come_v to_o corruption_n and_o not_o receive_v life_n which_o be_v nourrish_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n therefore_o either_o let_v they_o change_v their_o opinion_n or_o abstain_v from_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v before_o speak_v of_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n our_o opinion_n who_o hold_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v consonant_n to_o the_o eucharist_n and_o again_o the_o eucharist_n confirm_v our_o opinion_n for_o we_o offer_v unto_o he_o sacrifice_n these_o thing_n which_o be_v his_o preach_v agreable_o bread_n the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n word_n work_v the_o change_n in_o the_o bread_n the_o communication_n and_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o spirit_n for_o even_o as_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v of_o the_o earth_n receive_v the_o vocation_n of_o god_n be_v now_o no_o more_o common_a bread_n but_o the_o eucharist_n consist_v of_o two_o thing_n the_o earthly_a and_o the_o heavenly_a so_o also_o our_o body_n receive_v the_o eucharist_n be_v now_o no_o more_o corruptible_a have_v hope_n of_o the_o resurrection_n so_o s._n irenaeus_n where_o we_o see_v that_o in_o his_o time_n the_o catholics_n do_v so_o little_a doubt_n that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o word_n that_o they_o urge_v it_o to_o prove_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o teach_v it_o as_o a_o consonant_a opinion_n to_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n because_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o word_n and_o again_o that_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n because_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 5._o in_o the_o like_a manner_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o father_n in_o their_o succeed_a age_n affirm_v that_o the_o body_n god_n s._n cyprian_n of_o the_o change_n in_o the_o bread_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o his_o word_n as_o s._n cyprian_n in_o his_o book_n of_o our_o lord_n supper_n say_v the_o bread_n which_o our_o lord_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n be_v not_o change_v in_o outward_a form_n or_o shape_n but_o in_o nature_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o the_o word_n it_o be_v make_v flesh_n as_o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n the_o humanity_n be_v see_v and_o the_o divinity_n lie_v hide_v so_o after_o a_o unspeakable_a manner_n the_o divine_a essence_n do_v pour_v itself_o into_o the_o visible_a sacrament_n that_o man_n may_v use_v a_o religious_a devotion_n about_o the_o sacrament_n and_o may_v have_v a_o more_o simple_a or_o sincere_a access_n unto_o the_o truth_n even_o unto_o the_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o spirit_n who_o body_n and_o blood_n the_o sacrament_n be_v 6._o eusebius_n cesariensis_n live_v in_o the_o year_n 320._o god_n eusebius_n of_o the_o change_n by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o he_o as_o it_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o 3._o book_n and_o 45._o chapter_n of_o the_o pararell_n of_o damasus_n say_v many_o priest_n while_o they_o be_v in_o sin_n do_v work_v the_o holy_a thing_n or_o offer_v sacrifice_n neither_o do_v god_n turn_v away_o from_o they_o but_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n do_v consecrate_v the_o gift_n set_v before_o they_o and_o bread_n certain_o be_v make_v the_o precious_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o cup_n the_o precious_a blood_n of_o our_o lord_n bread_n s._n cyrill_n how_o christ_n work_v the_o change_n in_o the_o bread_n 7._o s._n cyrill_a of_o jerusalem_n live_v in_o the_o year_n 370._o and_o he_o in_o his_o 4._o mystagogica_fw-la say_v see_v that_o christ_n himself_o do_v say_v and_o affirm_v after_o this_o manner_n of_o the_o bread_n this_o be_v my_o body_n who_o ever_o hereafter_o dare_v doubt_n and_o he_o likewise_o
say_v and_o affirm_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n who_o i_o say_v cann_v doubt_v and_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o his_o blood_n heretofore_o at_o cana_n in_o galilea_n only_o by_o his_o will_n he_o change_v water_n into_o wine_n which_o be_v near_o unto_o blood_n and_o be_v he_o not_o worthy_a to_o be_v believe_v that_o have_v change_v wine_n into_o his_o blood_n he_o be_v invite_v to_o a_o corporal_a marriage_n wrought_v a_o wonderful_a miracle_n shall_v we_o not_o much_o more_o easy_o confess_v that_o he_o give_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o the_o child_n of_o his_o spouse_n wherefore_o with_o assuredness_n let_v we_o take_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n the_o body_n be_v give_v thou_o and_o under_o the_o species_n of_o wine_n the_o blood_n be_v give_v that_o have_v receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n thou_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n we_o shall_v be_v bearer_n of_o christ_n after_o that_o we_o have_v receive_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n into_o our_o membre_n 8._o s._n gregory_n nissen_n brother_n to_o s._n basile_n the_o great_a god_n s._n gregory_n nissen_n of_o the_o change_n in_o in_o the_o bread_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n live_v in_o in_o the_o year_n 380._o and_o he_o in_o his_o 37._o oration_n catechetica_fw-la say_v as_o christ_n by_o eat_v bread_n make_v it_o be_v divine_a body_n so_o likewise_o here_o bread_n be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n and_o prayer_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v and_o not_o by_o eat_v and_o drink_v become_v the_o body_n of_o the_o word_n change_v by_o the_o word_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n 9_o s._n ambrose_n who_o live_v in_o the_o year_n 370._o in_o word_n s._n ambrose_n of_o the_o change_n in_o the_o bread_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n word_n the_o 9_o chapter_n of_o his_o book_n of_o those_o who_o be_v begunn_v to_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o mystery_n say_v if_o human_a blessing_n of_o moses_n elias_n and_o elizaeus_n be_v of_o such_o force_n as_o that_o it_o can_v alter_v nature_n what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o the_o divine_a consecration_n where_o the_o word_n themselves_o of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n do_v work_v for_o this_o sacrament_n which_o thou_o do_v receive_v be_v make_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ._n if_o the_o word_n of_o elias_n be_v of_o such_o force_n that_o they_o can_v call_v fire_n from_o heaven_n shall_v not_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v sufficient_a to_o change_v the_o species_n of_o the_o element_n of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o world_n thou_o have_v read_v that_o because_o he_o speak_v the_o word_n they_o be_v make_v he_o command_v and_o they_o be_v create_v therefore_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n which_o can_v make_v of_o nothing_o that_o which_o be_v not_o cann_v it_o not_o change_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v into_o that_o which_o they_o be_v not_o for_o the_o difficulty_n be_v not_o lesser_a to_o give_v new_a nature_n to_o thing_n then_o to_o change_v nature_n again_o in_o his_o 4._o book_n and_o 4._o chapter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n speak_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n he_o say_v this_o bread_n be_v bread_n before_o the_o word_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o assoon_o as_o consecration_n be_v add_v unto_o it_o of_o bread_n it_o be_v make_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ._n this_o we_o affirm_v how_o cann_v that_o which_o be_v bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n by_o consecration_n and_o with_o what_o word_n and_o speech_n be_v consecration_n with_o the_o word_n of_o our_o jesus_n for_o in_o the_o rest_n which_o be_v say_v praise_n be_v give_v unto_o god_n prayer_n be_v make_v for_o the_o people_n for_o king_n etc._n etc._n but_o when_o we_o come_v that_o the_o venerable_a sacrament_n shall_v be_v make_v than_o the_o priest_n do_v not_o use_v his_o own_o word_n but_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n therefore_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v work_v this_o sacrament_n what_o word_n of_o christ_n even_o that_o by_o which_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v our_o lord_n command_v and_o the_o sea_n be_v make_v our_o lord_n command_v and_o all_o creature_n be_v beget_v if_o therefore_o there_o be_v so_o great_a force_n in_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n that_o these_o thing_n can_v begin_v to_o be_v which_o be_v not_o how_o much_o more_o will_v they_o be_v able_a to_o effect_v that_o those_o thing_n may_v be_v which_o be_v and_o be_v change_v in_o a_o other_o but_o hear_v the_o prophet_n say_v he_o say_v and_o they_o be_v make_v he_o command_v and_o they_o be_v create_v therefore_o that_o i_o may_v answer_v thou_o it_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n before_o consecration_n but_o after_o consecration_n i_o tell_v thou_o that_o then_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n again_o upon_o the_o 38._o psalm_n he_o say_v it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n which_o consecrate_v the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v thus_o s._n ambrose_n 10._o in_o like_a manner_n s._n chrisostome_n in_o his_o homily_n god_n s._n chrisostome_n of_o the_o change_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n the_o proditione_n judae_fw-la say_v it_o be_v not_o man_n that_o do_v make_v these_o thing_n which_o be_v expose_v for_o consecration_n upon_o the_o table_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o he_o who_o be_v crucify_v for_o we_o christ_n the_o word_n be_v pronounce_v with_o the_o priest_n mouth_n and_o they_o be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o grace_n and_o virtue_n of_o god_n he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n by_o these_o word_n the_o thing_n expose_v be_v consecrate_v and_o as_o that_o voice_n which_o say_v increase_n and_o multiply_v and_o replenish_v the_o earth_n be_v say_v but_o once_o yet_o at_o all_o time_n have_v this_o effect_n for_o generation_n nature_n concur_v so_o this_o word_n but_o once_o say_v and_o yet_o it_o give_v strength_n to_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v upon_o all_o the_o table_n of_o the_o church_n even_o until_o this_o day_n and_o shall_v do_v until_o his_o come_n to_o judgement_n again_o in_o his_o 83._o homily_n upon_o the_o s._n matthew_n he_o say_v we_o bishopp_n or_o priest_n in_o the_o consecration_n of_o this_o sacrament_n hold_v but_o the_o place_n of_o christ_n minister_n for_o he_o who_o do_v santify_v or_o make_v the_o change_n be_v christ_n himself_o thus_o s._n chrisostome_n 11._o s._n hierome_n upon_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o the_o galatian_n say_v although_o some_o think_v i_o worthy_a of_o reprehension_n change_n s._n hierome_n of_o this_o change_n for_o that_o in_o my_o book_n which_o i_o write_v of_o the_o preservation_n of_o virginity_n young_a woman_n ought_v to_o fly_v from_o wine_n as_o they_o do_v from_o poison_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o repent_v i_o of_o what_o i_o say_v for_o i_o rather_o contemn_v the_o effect_n or_o work_v of_o wine_n than_o the_o creature_n itself_o and_o i_o take_v liberty_n to_o give_v this_o counsel_n unto_o a_o virgin_n warm_a with_o a_o heat_n proper_a unto_o her_o year_n lest_o upon_o occasion_n of_o drink_v a_o little_a she_o may_v drink_v much_o and_o perish_v otherwise_o i_o do_v know_v that_o wine_n be_v consecrate_v into_o christ_n his_o blood_n thus_o s._n hierome_n 12._o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n and_o 4._o chapter_n god_n s._n augustine_n of_o the_o change_n in_o the_o sacrament_n by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la say_v we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o articulate_a word_n pronounce_v with_o the_o tongue_n or_o the_o sign_n of_o letter_n write_v in_o skin_n be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o that_o only_a which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o be_v consecrate_v by_o mystical_a prayer_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v not_o sanctify_v that_o it_o may_v be_v so_o great_a a_o sacrament_n but_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n work_v invisible_o see_v that_o god_n do_v work_v all_o the_o thing_n which_o by_o corporal_a motion_n be_v make_v in_o that_o work_n 13._o again_o in_o his_o book_n of_o sentence_n ad_fw-la prosperum_fw-la cite_v by_o gratian_n in_o his_o 2._o distinction_n he_o say_v in_o the_o species_n of_o wine_n and_o bread_n which_o we_o see_v we_o do_v honour_n invisible_a thing_n that_o be_v to_o say_v flesh_n and_o blood_n neither_o do_v we_o equal_o esteem_v of_o these_o two_o species_n after_o consecration_n as_o before_o consecration_n for_o before_o consecration_n we_o faithful_o confeffe_n that_o they_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n as_o nature_n have_v form_v they_o but_o after_o consecration_n they_o be_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o blessing_n have_v consecrate_v god_n s._n cyrillus_n alex._n
this_o earthly_a and_o worldly_a kingdom_n and_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v therein_o which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v so_o possess_v by_o wicked_a man_n and_o devil_n that_o our_o saviour_n himself_o do_v not_o let_v to_o call_v the_o devil_n prince_n of_o this_o world_n joh._n 12._o 31._o and_o 14._o 30._o and_o s._n paul_n to_o call_v he_o god_n of_o this_o world_n 2._o cor._n 4._o 4._o how_o can_v any_o man_n think_v it_o absurd_a for_o we_o to_o say_v that_o the_o same_o god_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o his_o word_n have_v establish_v the_o mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o church_n upon_o earth_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v and_o plant_v with_o his_o blood_n and_o have_v espouse_v unto_o himself_o forever_o osee_n 2._o 19_o see_v that_o they_o confess_v our_o saviour_n to_o be_v god_n and_o in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n to_o have_v take_v bread_n bless_a and_o say_v take_v you_o and_o eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o likewise_o to_o have_v take_v the_o chalice_n give_v thanks_o and_o give_v to_o they_o say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n 13._o this_o be_v the_o argument_n which_o move_v the_o ancient_a father_n to_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n the_o omnipotency_n of_o the_o wrd_n of_o god_n as_o i_o have_v abundant_o prove_v in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n for_o as_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o 3._o epistle_n to_o velosianus_n say_v in_o the_o wonderful_a work_n of_o god_n and_o high_a mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n all_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o deed_n be_v the_o omnipotency_n of_o the_o doeer_n whereupon_o s._n chrisostome_n in_o his_o 83._o homily_n upon_o s._n matthew_n exhort_v all_o christian_n say_v let_v we_o believe_v whole_o in_o god_n and_o let_v we_o not_o contradict_v he_o although_o that_o which_o he_o say_v seem_v contrary_a to_o our_o reason_n and_o our_o sight_n let_v his_o word_n have_v more_o authority_n with_o we_o than_o our_o reason_n or_o our_o eye_n etc._n etc._n let_v we_o not_o behold_v only_o the_o object_n which_o be_v there_o propose_v in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n but_o let_v we_o embrace_v his_o word_n for_o his_o word_n can_v abuse_v we_o but_o our_o sense_n be_v easy_o deceive_v his_o word_n have_v never_o fail_v but_o our_o sense_n be_v mistake_v every_o hour_n wherefore_o see_v that_o the_o word_n itself_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n let_v we_o be_v persuade_v and_o believe_v it_o and_o we_o shall_v see_v it_o with_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o understanding_n thus_o s._n chrisostome_n with_o who_o agree_v gaudentius_n in_o his_o 2._o tract_n of_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o sacrament_n say_v when_o our_o lord_n give_v the_o consecrate_a bread_n and_o wine_n unto_o his_o disciple_n he_o say_v unto_o they_o this_o be_v my_o body_n let_v we_o believe_v he_o i_o pray_v you_o who_o we_o have_v believe_v truth_n do_v not_o know_v what_o it_o be_v to_o lie_v 14._o wonderful_a be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n in_o his_o earthly_a kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n yet_o see_v that_o our_o lord_n descend_v from_o heaven_n and_o be_v incarnate_a to_o erect_v a_o spiritual_a kingdom_n far_o more_o excellent_a then_o be_v this_o material_a kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n even_o so_o excellent_a as_o that_o he_o say_v i_o will_v dwell_v and_o walk_v in_o they_o and_o i_o will_v be_v their_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n 2._o cor._n 6._o 16._o what_o marvel_n if_o in_o this_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n he_o work_n more_o wonderful_a thing_n than_o he_o do_v in_o that_o material_a see_v that_o he_o erect_v this_o for_o his_o friend_n and_o found_v that_o for_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n and_o beast_n and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v in_o general_a how_o our_o lord_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o his_o word_n consecrate_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n with_o bishopp_n and_o priest_n his_o officer_n and_o legate_n chap._n ix_o of_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o true_a real_a and_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n after_o consecration_n by_o the_o omnipotent_a power_n of_o god_n 1._o first_o these_o be_v as_o we_o may_v say_v the_o property_n god_n the_o quality_n and_o condition_n of_o god_n of_o god_n 1._o to_o do_v all_o thing_n what_o soever_o he_o will_v psal_n 113._o 1._o second_o he_o be_v faithful_a in_o all_o his_o word_n psal_n 144._o 14._o three_o able_a to_o do_v what_o soever_o he_o promise_v rom._n 4._o 21._o four_o with_o he_o all_o thing_n be_v possible_a math._n 19_o 26._o five_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v impossible_a with_o he_o any_o word_n luk._n 1._o 37._o six_o the_o word_n which_o proceed_v from_o his_o mouth_n shall_v not_o return_v unto_o he_o void_a but_o it_o shall_v do_v whatsoever_o he_o will_v and_o shall_v prosper_v in_o those_o thing_n for_o which_o he_o send_v it_o isai_n 55._o 11._o seaventh_o he_o will_v watch_v upon_o his_o word_n to_o do_v it_o jer._n 1._o 12._o eight_o he_o be_v truth_n itself_o io._n 14._o 6._o and_o to_o conclude_v it_o be_v impossible_a for_o god_n to_o lie_v heb._n 6._o 18._o 2._o second_o our_o saviour_n in_o plain_a and_o manifest_a drink_v the_o promise_n of_o godt_n o_o give_v his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n for_o meat_n and_o drink_v word_n promise_v that_o he_o will_v give_v meat_n that_o perish_v not_o but_o endure_v to_o life_n everlasting_a bread_n that_o descend_v down_o from_o heaven_n that_o if_o any_o any_o man_n eat_v of_o it_o worthy_o he_o die_v not_o live_v bread_n that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n bread_n which_o be_v his_o flesh_n the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n drink_v which_o be_v his_o blood_n meat_n in_o deed_n drink_v in_o deed_n himself_o to_o eat_v and_o so_o forth_o as_o it_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o 6._o chapter_n of_o s._n john_n 3._o that_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o 6._o of_o s._n john_n speak_v of_o the_o b._n sacrament_n the_o ancient_a father_n do_v abundant_o witness_v who_o authority_n be_v cite_v at_o large_a by_o bellarmin_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o sacrament_n s._n john_n in_o his_o 6._o chap._n write_v of_o the_o b._n sacrament_n eucharist_n maldonate_fw-it upon_o the_o 6._o of_o s._n john_n and_o doctor_n saunders_n in_o his_o book_n that_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o 6._o of_o s._n john_n have_v speak_v proper_o of_o the_o eucharist_n i_o will_v content_v myself_o for_o the_o further_a proof_n hereof_o which_o the_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 1._o chapter_n of_o his_o 3._o book_n de_fw-fr consensu_fw-la euangelistarum_fw-la where_o after_o that_o he_o have_v cite_v the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o evangelist_n say_v that_o s._n john_n in_o that_o place_n have_v not_o speak_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o in_o a_o other_o he_o do_v manifest_o witness_v that_o our_o lord_n have_v far_o more_o copious_o speak_v hereof_o which_o be_v this_o 6._o of_o s._n john_n for_o no_o where_o else_o have_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o communion_n again_o in_o the_o last_o chapter_n of_o his_o 4._o book_n he_o say_v that_o s._n john_n do_v rare_o write_v that_o which_o the_o rest_n do_v yet_o when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n supper_n itself_o which_o none_o of_o the_o rest_n pass_v over_o with_o silence_n he_o extend_v himself_o much_o more_o copious_o out_o of_o the_o cellar_n of_o our_o lord_n breast_n where_o he_o use_v to_o repose_v his_o head_n and_o in_o the_o 20._o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr peccatorum_fw-la meritis_fw-la he_o say_v let_v we_o hear_v our_o lord_n speak_v this_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o holy_a table_n except_o you_o eat_v may_v flesh_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o it_o can_v with_o any_o reason_n be_v deny_v that_o s._n john_n in_o his_o 6._o chapter_n speak_v of_o of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n 4._o moreover_o this_o be_v the_o condition_n and_o nature_n of_o god_n almighty_n that_o he_o never_o give_v or_o perform_v promise_v the_o condition_n of_o god_n be_v to_o give_v more_o than_o he_o promise_v less_o than_o in_o clear_a and_o manifest_a word_n he_o promise_v but_o for_o the_o most_o part_n more_o than_o he_o promise_v as_o become_v the_o liberality_n and_o magnificence_n of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n for_o he_o that_o give_v more_o than_o he_o promise_v do_v not_o deceive_v but_o he_o who_o give_v less_o be_v a_o deceaver_n and_o a_o impostor_n so_o it_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o affirm_v that_o christ_n who_o be_v true_a god_n shall_v
give_v less_o than_o he_o promise_v in_o so_o manifest_a and_o plain_a term_n and_o these_o so_o often_o repeat_v wherefore_o see_v that_o he_o often_o promise_v with_o clear_a and_o manifest_a word_n in_o the_o 6._o of_o s._n john_n that_o he_o will_v give_v live_v bread_n bread_n that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n bread_n which_o be_v his_o flesh_n for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n meat_n which_o be_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v which_o be_v his_o blood_n meat_n which_o who_o soever_o eat_v worthy_o have_v life_n everlasting_a and_o abide_v in_o christ_n and_o christ_n in_o he_o it_o can_v without_o blasphemy_n be_v affirm_v that_o christ_n have_v not_o true_o and_o real_o perform_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v so_o often_o and_o so_o plain_o and_o clear_o promise_v and_o that_o rather_o more_o than_o less_o than_o his_o word_n import_v which_o can_v be_v unless_o he_o give_v his_o true_a real_a and_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n himself_o under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n unto_o we_o for_o meat_n for_o whatsoever_o inferior_a thing_n he_o shall_v give_v which_o shall_v be_v less_o than_o himself_o the_o same_o shall_v also_o be_v less_o than_o his_o promise_n 5._o and_o the_o want_n of_o performance_n if_o any_o such_o thing_n can_v possible_o be_v be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o flesh_n our_o saviour_n assurance_n in_o give_v his_o flesh_n remarkable_a for_o that_o our_o saviour_n with_o a_o double_a assurance_n or_o as_o it_o be_v with_o a_o kind_n of_o oath_n affirm_v say_v amen_o amen_n i_o say_v to_o you_o unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o io._n 6._o 53._o whereupon_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o 41._o tract_n upon_o s._n john_n say_v truth_n say_v amen_o amen_n i_o say_v unto_o you_o what_o a_o thing_n be_v this_o that_o our_o lord_n shoul_n say_v amen_o amen_n i_o say_v unto_o you_o he_o commend_v it_o very_o much_o which_o he_o so_o pronounce_v see_v that_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a so_o to_o say_v amen_o amen_n i_o say_v unto_o you_o be_v his_o oath_n 6._o wherefore_o see_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o god_n to_o lie_v and_o alter_v all_o these_o his_o afore_o say_a property_n and_o condition_n it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o our_o lord_n at_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o communion_n give_v his_o true_a real_a and_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n unto_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o communion_n and_o institute_v that_o his_o true_a real_a and_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n shall_v be_v administer_v in_o the_o communion_n to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o those_o his_o word_n here_o speak_v in_o the_o 6._o s._n john_n and_o also_o at_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n where_o he_o do_v not_o only_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o and_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o many_o 7._o if_o after_o all_o these_o fair_a word_n and_o large_a promise_n of_o receive_v from_o our_o saviour_n this_o heavenly_a promise_n god_n can_v fail_v to_o fulfil_v his_o many_o and_o serious_a promise_n food_n and_o divine_a meat_n we_o shall_v receive_v from_o he_o only_o a_o piece_n of_o baker_n bread_n and_o sup_v of_o vintner_n wine_n which_o notwithstanding_o all_o that_o it_o have_v from_o he_o or_o on_o his_o part_n be_v even_o after_o consecration_n but_o a_o piece_n of_o bread_n and_o sup_v of_o vintner_n wine_n without_o any_o real_a quality_n entity_n substance_n flesh_n body_n or_o blood_n of_o he_o in_o it_o more_o than_o be_v in_o other_o baker_n bread_n and_o vintner_n wine_n which_o be_v the_o assertion_n of_o our_o adversary_n who_o can_v with_o reason_n think_v or_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v god_n faithful_a in_o his_o word_n and_o just_a in_o all_o his_o promise_n 8._o that_o the_o puritan_n say_v they_o receive_v the_o true_a real_a and_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o fiction_n the_o protestans_fw-la and_o puritan_n communion_n a_o mere_a imagination_n or_o fiction_n our_o lord_n by_o faith_n eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n by_o faith_n imagine_v he_o there_o though_o he_o be_v as_o far_o of_o in_o deed_n and_o truth_n as_o it_o be_v to_o heaven_n that_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o first_o these_o be_v their_o own_o word_n which_o be_v not_o where_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n second_o we_o do_v not_o look_v for_o the_o action_n of_o man_n what_o they_o do_v or_o aught_o to_o do_v when_o they_o communicate_v or_o receive_v but_o for_o the_o action_n of_o god_n in_o prepare_v and_o give_v the_o thing_n they_o be_v to_o receive_v before_o they_o receive_v it_o three_o faith_n or_o imagination_n can_v not_o make_v a_o thing_n real_o absent_a to_o be_v real_o present_a as_o be_v manifest_a by_o experience_n and_o to_o believe_v that_o a_o thing_n which_o be_v indeed_o absent_a be_v real_o and_o indeed_o present_a be_v but_o a_o deceit_n in_o the_o imagination_n and_o a_o false_a faith_n which_o cann_v never_o make_v that_o which_o be_v not_o present_a to_o be_v present_a four_o suppose_v that_o these_o say_n of_o the_o puritan_n be_v true_a then_o the_o word_n and_o promise_n of_o christ_n be_v false_a and_o so_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v true_a god_n for_o these_o be_v not_o his_o word_n promise_n work_n and_o action_n but_o they_o wherefore_o if_o they_o say_v true_a than_o our_o lord_n have_v not_o fulfil_v his_o promise_n and_o so_o be_v not_o true_a god_n not_o faithful_a in_o all_o his_o word_n but_o see_v that_o he_o be_v true_a god_n and_o son_n of_o god_n and_o truth_n itself_o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o he_o fulfil_v these_o his_o promise_n so_o solenne_o make_v and_o give_v his_o true_a and_o real_a flesh_n to_o eat_v and_o blood_n to_o drink_v in_o the_o communion_n 9_o and_o this_o be_v as_o i_o have_v say_v heretofore_o the_o argument_n body_n christ_n be_v god_n because_o he_o can_v change_v bread_n into_o his_o body_n of_o s._n irenaeus_n to_o prove_v against_o some_o heretic_n who_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n the_o change_v of_o bread_n into_o his_o body_n and_o wine_n into_o his_o blood_n say_v in_o the_o 34._o chap._n of_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o heresy_n how_o will_v it_o be_v manifest_a to_o these_o heretic_n who_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o the_o bread_n upon_o which_o thanks_n be_v give_v be_v the_o body_n of_o their_o lord_n and_o the_o chalice_n his_o blood_n if_o they_o do_v not_o say_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o biulder_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o word_n by_o which_o tree_n be_v be_v fruit_n fountain_n flow_v the_o earth_n first_o do_v give_v the_o blade_n afterward_o the_o ear_n then_o full_a wheat_n in_o the_o ear_n thus_o s._n irenaeus_n who_o live_v why_o lest_o yet_o some_o of_o the_o apostle_n scholar_n be_v live_v and_o the_o action_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v fresh_a in_o the_o memory_n of_o man_n and_o from_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o even_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n none_o deny_v that_o christ_n give_v his_o true_a flesh_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o communion_n but_o those_o who_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v god_n as_o witness_v s._n hilarius_n in_o his_o 8._o book_n of_o the_o trinity_n say_v christ_n say_v my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n indeed_o and_o my_o blood_n be_v drink_v indeed_o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n remain_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o there_o be_v no_o place_n leave_v to_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o this_o sacrament_n for_o now_o by_o the_o profession_n of_o our_o lord_n himself_o and_o by_o our_o faith_n or_o according_a to_o our_o faith_n it_o be_v true_o blood_n and_o these_o thing_n be_v take_v into_o our_o hand_n as_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o swallow_v down_o do_v work_v this_o that_o we_o may_v be_v in_o christ_n and_o christ_n in_o us._n and_o be_v not_o this_o truth_n it_o fall_v out_o very_o that_o it_o be_v not_o esteem_v true_a by_o those_o who_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n 10._o from_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o when_o our_o lord_n first_o preach_v of_o this_o bless_a sacrament_n in_o the_o 6._o of_o it_o s._n peter_n believe_v the_o real_a presence_n before_o he_o understand_v it_o s._n john_n s._n peter_n as_o witness_v s._n augustine_n upon_o the_o 54._o psalm_n do_v not_o
then_o understand_v how_o our_o lord_n will_v give_v we_o his_o flesh_n to_o eat_v and_o his_o blood_n to_o drink_v but_o he_o believe_v the_o word_n to_o be_v good_a which_o he_o do_v not_o understand_v and_o that_o they_o shall_v eat_v his_o true_a flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o true_a blood_n because_o christ_n be_v god_n and_o son_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o cast_v of_o all_o doubt_n and_o misbeleef_n against_o this_o sacrament_n and_o firm_o believe_v that_o they_o shall_v eat_v his_o true_a flesh_n indeed_o and_o drink_v his_o blood_n indeed_o answer_v lord_n unto_o who_o shall_v we_o go_v thou_o have_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o we_o believe_v and_o have_v know_v that_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o some_o of_o god_n joh._n 6._o 68_o 11._o the_o reason_n why_o s._n peter_n answer_v thus_o be_v because_o the_o jew_n and_o many_o of_o the_o disciple_n sacrament_n the_o reason_n of_o s._n peter_n answer_n to_o our_o saviour_n whenother_n believe_v not_o his_o word_n speak_v about_o this_o sacrament_n who_o murmur_v at_o our_o saviour_n word_n and_o say_v this_o say_v be_v hard_a that_o they_o shall_v eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n do_v not_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v god_n but_o only_a man_n say_v how_o cann_v this_o man_n give_v we_o his_o flesh_n to_o eat_v who_o if_o they_o have_v believe_v that_o he_o be_v god_n and_o son_n of_o god_n will_v have_v make_v no_o difficulty_n in_o believe_v that_o he_o will_v give_v they_o his_o flesh_n to_o eat_v and_o his_o blood_n to_o drink_v know_v that_o with_o god_n all_o thing_n be_v possible_a math._n 19_o 26._o and_o that_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v impossible_a with_o god_n any_o word_n luk._n 1._o 37._o and_o therefore_o s._n peter_n say_v thou_o have_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o we_o believe_v and_o have_v know_v that_o thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o profession_n of_o his_o faith_n forme_o make_v say_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n math._n 16._o 16._o and_o therefore_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n only_a judas_n except_v believe_v that_o he_o both_o can_v and_o will_v give_v doubt_n the_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n often_o repeat_v in_o the_o scripture_n lest_o there_o may_v be_v any_o doubt_n they_o his_o flesh_n to_o eat_v and_o blood_n to_o drink_v 12._o and_o lest_o there_o may_v be_v any_o doubt_n make_v whether_o our_o saviour_n give_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o communion_n or_o no_o s._n matthew_n s._n luke_n s._n mark_v and_o s._n paul_n when_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o communion_n do_v all_o affirm_v that_o our_o lord_n take_v bread_n and_o blessing_n say_v take_v you_o and_o eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o likewise_o the_o chalice_n say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o he_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n insomuch_o as_o among_o they_o all_o account_v both_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n lest_o there_o may_v be_v any_o doubt_n make_v of_o the_o deliver_v his_o body_n to_o eat_v and_o his_o blood_n to_o drink_v they_o repeat_v it_o eight_o time_n in_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n beside_o other_o place_n 13._o and_o to_o take_v away_o all_o doubt_n and_o distrust_n that_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o communion_n do_v not_o give_v his_o body_n to_o eat_v and_o blood_n to_o drink_v according_a to_o his_o promise_n in_o the_o 6._o of_o s._n john_n our_o lord_n do_v not_o only_o say_v take_v you_o and_o eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_z drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n but_o also_o add_v a_o reason_n or_o cause_n why_o he_o will_v have_v they_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v that_o holy_a communion_n why_o our_o saviour_n will_v have_v the_o apostle_n to_o receive_v the_o communion_n communion_n say_v for_o this_o be_v my_o body_n as_o wittness_v alexander_n the_o first_o who_o be_v make_v bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n 121._o in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o his_o 1._o epistle_n to_o all_o catholic_n origen_n in_o his_o 35._o tract_n upon_o s._n mattheuw_n s._n ambrose_n in_o the_o 5._o chapter_n of_o his_o 4._o book_n of_o sacrament_n s._n mark_v in_o his_o public_a liturgy_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n as_o wittness_v s._n mattheuw_n matth._n 26._o 28._o s._n cyprian_n epist_n 63._o s._n hierome_n epist_n 150._o etc._n etc._n where_o our_o lord_n do_v assign_v unto_o the_o apostle_n as_o a_o cause_n or_o reason_n why_o he_o will_v have_v they_o eat_v and_o drink_v of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v prepare_v for_o they_o in_o the_o communion_n for_o or_o because_o it_o be_v his_o body_n for_o or_o because_o it_o be_v his_o blood_n show_v unto_o they_o that_o the_o motive_n which_o move_v he_o so_o much_o to_o desire_v the_o institution_n of_o this_o bless_a sacrament_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v eat_v and_o drink_v of_o it_o be_v because_o it_o be_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o that_o he_o may_v feed_v they_o with_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o what_o he_o have_v promise_v in_o the_o sixth_o of_o s._n john_n 14._o moreover_o all_o the_o people_n and_o nation_n unto_o presence_n all_o nation_n unto_o which_o the_o apostle_n preach_v believe_v the_o real_a presence_n which_o the_o apostle_n preach_v which_o will_v be_v to_o long_o to_o reckon_v up_o believe_v that_o our_o lord_n both_o than_o do_v and_o now_o do_v give_v his_o body_n to_o eat_v and_o his_o blood_n to_o drink_v in_o the_o communion_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o their_o chronicle_n history_n record_n monument_n book_n of_o common_a prayer_n and_o practice_v and_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o all_o the_o nation_n unto_o which_o the_o apostle_n preach_v be_v so_o infinite_a many_o and_o so_o far_o distant_a one_o from_o another_o divide_v by_o diverse_a language_n principality_n and_o kingdom_n shall_v all_o fall_v into_o one_o and_o the_o same_o error_n as_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n and_o into_o a_o error_n man_n how_o impossible_a it_o be_v for_o the_o real_a presence_n to_o be_v invent_v by_o any_o man_n so_o hard_o to_o be_v embrace_v a●_n it_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o under_o the_o species_n of_o all_o little_a piece_n of_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n in_o heaven_n and_o under_o the_o species_n of_o a_o little_a wine_n be_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o adore_v and_o respect_v they_o as_o his_o true_a real_a and_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n when_o at_o the_o first_o speak_v of_o it_o by_o our_o lord_n it_o seem_v a_o thing_n so_o improbable_a that_o not_o only_o the_o jew_n murmur_v at_o it_o but_o also_o many_o of_o the_o disciple_n be_v scandalize_v to_o hear_v of_o it_o insuch_o sort_n as_o at_o the_o hear_n of_o it_o only_o they_o go_v back_o and_o walk_v no_o more_o which_o our_o lord_n john_n 6._o and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o can_v it_o be_v imagine_v by_o any_o understand_a man_n that_o after_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n all_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n without_o a_o teacher_n and_o without_o a_o master_n will_v believe_v these_o thing_n of_o themselves_o and_o no_o man_n to_o take_v notice_n either_o when_o or_o where_o or_o how_o they_o fall_v into_o these_o suppose_a gross_a error_n as_o the_o comike_n say_v these_o thing_n be_v not_o well_o devise_v daws_n 15._o and_o because_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n most_o firm_o believe_v that_o the_o penance_n great_a sinner_n not_o communicate_v until_o after_o many_o year_n of_o penance_n same_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n in_o heaven_n be_v in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n after_o consecration_n therefore_o they_o do_v not_o communicate_v great_a sinner_n as_o adulterer_n drunkard_n apostatas_fw-la and_o the_o like_a until_o after_o many_o year_n of_o penance_n as_o wittness_v the_o council_n of_o iliberis_n celebrate_v in_o the_o year_n 305._o throughout_o the_o council_n of_o arles_n hold_v in_o the_o year_n 314._o can_n 14._o and_o 23._o the_o council_n of_o ancira_n gather_v the_o same_o year_n the_o first_o great_a council_n of_o nice_a can._n 10._o 11._o 12._o and_o 13._o according_a to_o the_o greek_a copy_n which_o they_o do_v for_o the_o great_a respect_n they_o have_v to_o the_o most_o sacred_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o communion_n not_o to_o give_v that_o which_o be_v holy_a unto_o dog_n nor_o cast_a pearl_n before_o swine_n according_a as_o our_o lord_n have_v give_v commandment_n matth._n 7._o 6._o 16._o if_o these_o
ancient_a father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n have_v believe_v that_o in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n after_o consecration_n there_o have_v be_v no_o real_a entity_n or_o quality_n more_o than_o be_v in_o baker_n bread_n and_o vintner_n wine_n and_o that_o by_o take_v a_o piece_n of_o bread_n and_o apprehend_v christ_n in_o heaven_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o faith_n they_o may_v have_v receive_v worthy_o they_o will_v never_o have_v retain_v penitent_a sinner_n so_o long_o from_o the_o holy_a communion_n as_o sometime_o three_o year_n sometime_o five_o sometime_o ten_o and_o sometime_o until_o their_o death_n and_o that_o in_o time_n of_o severe_a persecution_n 17._o moreover_o about_o 80._o year_n after_o the_o nativity_n presence_n diverse_a accuse_v of_o heresy_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o deny_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o our_o lord_n simon_n magus_n and_o menander_n be_v accuse_v by_o s._n ignatius_n for_o deny_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o flesh_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus-christ_n as_o wittness_v theodoret_n in_o his_o 3._o dialogue_n and_o about_o the_o year_n 250._o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la bishop_n of_o antioch_n among_o other_o thing_n be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n by_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o his_o time_n for_o affirm_v that_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n be_v corruptible_a and_o mortal_a blood_n because_o our_o lord_n say_v of_o his_o blood_n take_v it_o and_o divide_v it_o among_o you_o how_o say_v he_o cann_v it_o be_v incorruptible_a blood_n if_o it_o be_v divide_v and_o pour_v out_o as_o wittness_v dionysius_n alexandrinus_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o say_v paul_n set_v down_o in_o the_o 3._o to_o i_o bibliothecae_fw-la patrum_fw-la and_o may_v be_v gather_v out_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n set_v down_o by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n of_o that_o time_n and_o send_v unto_o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la set_v down_o by_o bini_fw-la in_o the_o 1._o tom_n of_o the_o counsel_n fol._n 162._o 18._o these_o thing_n consider_v what_o shall_v we_o say_v unto_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n unto_o his_o church_n which_o sacrament_n the_o promise_n of_o our_o lord_n make_v void_a if_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n shall_v not_o be_v in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 2._o chapter_n of_o his_o 1._o book_n against_o the_o epistle_n of_o parmenianus_n cale_v the_o thunder_n of_o the_o divine_a testament_n which_o god_n give_v in_o promise_n unto_o abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n who_o god_n he_o affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v say_v i_o be_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n the_o god_n of_o isaac_n and_o jacob_n this_o be_v may_v name_v for_o ever_o and_o what_o be_v say_v to_o abraham_n in_o thy_o seed_n shall_v be_v bless_v all_o nation_n gen._n 12._o 22._o what_o be_v say_v to_o isaac_n in_o thy_o seed_n shall_v be_v bless_v all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n gen._n 26._o what_o be_v say_v to_o jacob_n i_o be_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n thy_o father_n and_o the_o god_n of_o isaac_n be_v not_o afraid_a etc._n etc._n they_o seed_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n to_o the_o west_n and_o to_o the_o south_n and_o to_o the_o north_n and_o to_o the_o east_n in_o europe_n asia_n africa_n and_o america_n and_o in_o thou_o and_o in_o thy_o seed_n shall_v be_v bless_v all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o lest_o the_o jew_n shall_v think_v that_o this_o be_v speak_v of_o they_o the_o apostle_n declare_v what_o be_v intend_v by_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n say_v to_o abraham_n and_o to_o his_o seed_n be_v the_o promise_v make_v and_o he_o do_v not_o say_v to_o seed_n as_o in_o many_o but_o as_o in_o one_o to_o thy_o seed_n which_o be_v christ_n gal._n 3._o wherefore_o see_v that_o it_o be_v promise_v which_o so_o great_a authority_n and_o publish_v by_o so_o great_a a_o truth_n and_o now_o they_o do_v contradict_v it_o who_o will_v be_v call_v christian_n thus_o s._n augustine_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n to_o his_o church_n which_o he_o call_v the_o thunder_n of_o god_n 19_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o these_o and_o many_o more_o the_o like_a promise_n of_o god_n unto_o his_o church_n set_v down_o in_o both_o testament_n as_o that_o it_o shall_v possess_v the_o gate_n of_o her_o enemy_n gen._n 12._o the_o mountain_n shall_v be_v move_v and_o the_o little_a hill_n shall_v tremble_v but_o my_o mercy_n shall_v not_o depart_v from_o thou_o and_o the_o convenant_n of_o my_o peace_n shall_v not_o be_v move_v isa_n 54._o our_o lord_n have_v swear_v by_o his_o right_a hand_n and_o by_o the_o arm_n of_o his_o strength_n if_o i_o shall_v give_v thy_o wheat_n any_o more_o to_o be_v meat_n to_o thy_o enemy_n isa_n 62._o all_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v remember_v and_o be_v convert_v to_o our_o lord_n and_o all_o the_o family_n of_o the_o gentile_n shall_v adore_v in_o his_o sight_n psal_n 21._o 37._o in_o his_o day_n shall_v arise_v justice_n and_o abundance_n of_o peace_n so_o long_o as_o the_o moon_n endure_v and_o he_o shall_v rule_v from_o sea_n to_o sea_n and_o from_o the_o river_n of_o jordan_n where_o he_o be_v baptize_v and_o begin_v to_o preach_v unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n psal_n 71._o 6._o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o matt._n 16._o 18._o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v abide_v with_o she_o for_o ever_o io._n 14._o 16._o the_o house_n of_o god_n the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n 1._o tim._n 3._o 15._o go_v teach_v all_o nation_n be_v hold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o all_o day_n even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n matth._n 28._o 20._o what_o shall_v we_o say_v unto_o our_o 3._o creed_n the_o sacrament_n the_o three_o creed_n not_o always_o true_a if_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v not_o be_v in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n apostle_n creed_n wherein_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o teach_v christian_n to_o believe_v in_o all_o age_n and_o time_n as_o a_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o catholic_a church_n or_o that_o church_n which_o be_v general_o dilate_v over_o the_o world_n the_o nicen_n creed_n which_o be_v make_v in_o the_o 1._o general_a council_n which_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n by_o 318._o holy_a bishop_n which_o teach_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a church_n and_o that_o church_n to_o be_v catholic_a or_o general_o dilate_v over_o the_o world_n and_o found_v by_o the_o apostle_n athanasius_n his_o creed_n which_o say_v whosoever_o will_v be_v save_v it_o be_v necessary_a above_o all_o thing_n that_o he_o hold_v the_o catholic_a faith_n which_o faith_n except_o a_o man_n keep_v whole_a and_o inviolate_a without_o all_o doubt_n he_o shall_v everlasting_o perish_v when_o now_o for_o 1600._o year_n there_o have_v be_v no_o church_n or_o faith_n catholic_a or_o general_o dilate_v over_o the_o world_n but_o they_o who_o believe_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n give_v his_o body_n to_o be_v eat_v and_o his_o blood_n to_o be_v drinken_fw-mi and_o have_v believe_v that_o they_o in_o the_o communion_n have_v receive_v the_o true_a real_a and_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o have_v honour_v it_o and_o respect_v it_o as_o his_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v heretofore_o and_o shall_v prove_v more_o all_o large_a hereafter_o 21._o if_o the_o true_a and_o real_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v not_o in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n how_o can_v the_o christian_n of_o those_o age_n say_v i_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n or_o faith_n when_o there_o be_v no_o catholic_a church_n or_o faith_n in_o those_o age_n which_o hold_v not_o the_o true_a and_o real_a presence_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n after_o consecration_n and_o before_o receive_v be_v not_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n true_a in_o all_o age_n and_o time_n since_o they_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n what_o shall_v we_o say_v unto_o all_o those_o promise_n of_o god_n unto_o his_o church_n and_o unto_o our_o three_o creed_n shall_v we_o say_v that_o god_n have_v fail_v in_o his_o promise_n now_o for_o 1600._o year_n how_o shall_v we_o persuade_v man_n to_o believe_v he_o hereafter_o or_o induce_v man_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v true_a 22._o §_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o our_o three_o creed_n shall_v we_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n creed_n have_v not_o always_o be_v true_a since_o it_o be_v make_v or_o shall_v we_o say_v that_o our_o 3._o creed_n have_v be_v hitherto_o false_a or_o rather_o shall_v we_o not_o say_v our_o lord_n be_v faithful_a in_o all_o his_o word_n psal_n 144._o 14._o
that_o the_o say_n of_o amen_o do_v signify_v the_o free_a consent_n and_o confirmation_n of_o the_o thing_n speak_v of_o before_o or_o propound_v to_o be_v donn_v wherefore_o see_v that_o both_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o faithful_a in_o all_o age_n add_v amen_o to_o the_o word_n speak_v of_o the_o flesh_n body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o eucharist_n it_o be_v most_o manifest_a that_o both_o it_o be_v the_o true_a flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o they_o speak_v of_o and_o the_o faithful_a in_o all_o age_n believe_v it_o to_o be_v the_o true_a flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n even_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n for_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v he_o that_o supply_v the_o place_n of_o the_o vulgar_a how_o shall_v he_o say_v amen_o upon_o thy_o blessing_n if_o he_o know_v not_o what_o thou_o say_v 1._o cor._n 14._o 16._o whereupon_o s._n hierome_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o last_o chapter_n to_o the_o galathian_o say_v moreover_o that_o amen_o do_v express_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o hearer_n and_o be_v a_o seal_n of_o the_o truth_n the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n do_v teach_v we_o where_o s._n paul_n say_v but_o if_o thou_o bless_v with_o the_o spirit_n he_o who_o supply_v the_o place_n of_o the_o common_a people_n how_o shall_v he_o say_v amen_n to_o thy_o blessing_n because_o he_o know_v not_o what_o thou_o say_v whereby_o he_o declare_v that_o a_o unlearned_a man_n can_v answer_v that_o it_o be_v true_a which_o be_v say_v as_o amen_o signifi_v unless_o he_o understand_v that_o which_o be_v teach_v whereupon_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n before_o he_o administer_v the_o communion_n to_o the_o vulgar_a common_a people_n admonish_v they_o that_o it_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o witness_v pelagius_n who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n hierom_n in_o his_o commentary_n presence_n the_o people_n advertise_v of_o the_o real_a presence_n upon_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o 11._o chapter_n say_v when_o we_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n we_o be_v admonish_v by_o the_o priest_n that_o it_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n 5._o not_o only_o in_o the_o liturgiy_n of_o s._n james_n which_o be_v use_v for_o the_o administration_n of_o this_o sacrament_n nation_n amen_n to_o the_o real_a presence_n answer_v by_o all_o nation_n at_o jerusalem_n the_o people_n answer_v amen_o to_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n and_o to_o the_o priest_n when_o he_o say_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n or_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o liturgy_n or_o public_a church_n service_n kook_v as_o in_o the_o liturgy_n of_o s._n peter_n which_o be_v make_v for_o the_o latin_a church_n the_o liturgy_n of_o s._n mark_v make_v for_o the_o greek_a church_n the_o liturgy_n of_o s._n basil_n make_v for_o the_o church_n of_o capadocia_n the_o liturgy_n of_o s._n chrisostome_n make_v for_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o ethiopian_n make_v by_o s._n matthew_n the_o priest_n represent_v the_o person_n of_o our_o saviour_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o people_n answer_n amen_o amen_n so_o we_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v and_o confess_v and_o do_v praise_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n this_o be_v true_o thy_o body_n the_o priest_n say_v etc._n etc._n this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n etc._n etc._n the_o people_n answer_n amen_o amen_n amen_n we_o believe_v it_o and_o confess_v and_o and_o do_v praise_v the_o lord_n our_o god_n this_o be_v true_o thy_o blood_n etc._n etc._n the_o priest_n say_v this_o be_v the_o body_n holy_a honourable_a and_o vital_a of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus-christ_n which_o have_v be_v give_v for_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o obtain_v of_o life_n everlasting_a to_o those_o who_o take_v it_o true_o amen_o this_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus-christ_n holy_a honourable_a and_o quicken_a which_o have_v be_v give_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n unto_o all_o those_o who_o shall_v true_o receive_v it_o amen_n this_o be_v true_o the_o body_n and_o this_o be_v true_o the_o blood_n of_o emanuel_n our_o god_n amen_n i_o do_v believe_v it_o now_o and_o for_o ever_o amen_n 6._o to_o this_o end_n that_o the_o people_n may_v answer_v amen_o to_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n and_o confirm_v loud_v why_o ancient_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n be_v speak_v a_o loud_v their_o belief_n of_o the_o true_a real_a and_o substantial_a be_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o eucharist_n after_o consecration_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o word_n of_o consecration_n be_v pronounce_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n that_o all_o the_o people_n present_a at_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n may_v answer_v amen_o to_o the_o confirm_v and_o profess_v of_o their_o faith_n which_o continue_v as_o it_o seem_v until_o about_o the_o year_n 700._o about_o which_o time_n diverse_a man_n retain_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n will_v sing_v they_o up_o and_o down_o the_o street_n as_o voice_n the_o occasion_n why_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n be_v speak_v which_o a_o low_a voice_n they_o walk_v and_o in_o other_o indecent_a place_n unfit_a for_o such_o sacred_a word_n and_o also_o certain_a shepherd_n who_o have_v retain_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n by_o heart_n erect_v a_o stone_n for_o a_o altar_n and_o place_v bread_n and_o wine_n thereon_o pronounce_v the_o word_n over_o they_o as_o they_o have_v see_v priest_n to_o do_v whereupon_o fire_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n consume_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o stone_n and_o so_o astonish_v the_o shepherd_n as_o that_o for_o a_o long_a time_n after_o they_o can_v scarce_o speak_v as_o witness_v sophronius_n in_o the_o 196._o chapter_n of_o his_o prato_n spirituali_fw-la remigius_n antisiodorensis_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o alcuinus_fw-la in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr divinis_fw-la officijs_fw-la for_o remedy_n whereof_o and_o such_o like_a prophanesse_n the_o latin_a church_n have_v bring_v up_o the_o custom_n to_o pronounce_v the_o sacred_a word_n of_o consecration_n with_o a_o low_a though_o a_o distinct_a voice_n yet_o never_o thelesse_o even_o until_o this_o day_n when_o the_o priest_n do_v communicate_v himself_o before_o he_o receive_v hold_v the_o eucharist_n in_o his_o hand_n he_o say_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus-christ_n keep_v my_o soul_n to_o everlasting_a life_n amen_n and_o after_o communicate_v himself_o and_o when_o he_o communicateh_o any_o other_o before_o he_o deliver_v the_o eucharist_n he_o hold_v it_o in_o his_o hand_n and_o say_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus-christ_n keep_v thy_o soul_n to_o life_n everlasting_a amen_n 7._o in_o the_o liturgy_n or_o mass_n of_o s._n ambrose_n set_v forth_o for_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n the_o priest_n public_o show_v the_o consecrate_a host_n unto_o the_o communicant_n and_o say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o people_n before_o they_o receive_v in_o confirmation_n that_o they_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v the_o body_n before_o it_o be_v deliver_v unto_o they_o and_o to_o profess_v their_o faith_n in_o this_o point_n answer_n amen_n the_o same_o custom_n be_v use_v also_o in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o chalice_n when_o the_o communion_n be_v distribute_v in_o both_o kind_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o 49._o question_n of_o a_o book_n dedicate_v to_o orosius_n by_o some_o attribute_v to_o s._n augustine_n which_o say_v that_o before_o the_o priest_n administrate_v the_o chalice_n unto_o those_o who_o communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n he_o say_v the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus-christ_n and_o he_o that_o communicate_v in_o profession_n of_o his_o faith_n that_o he_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v the_o very_a blood_n of_o our_o lord_n independent_a of_o his_o faith_n and_o before_o he_o communicate_v answer_v amen_n so_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n have_v at_o all_o time_n even_o from_o the_o first_o foundation_n thereof_o by_o the_o apostle_n use_v public_a acclamation_n in_o the_o confirmation_n of_o their_o belief_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o eucharist_n before_o receive_v and_o independent_a of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o receiver_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o discretion_n of_o every_o understand_a man_n to_o think_v how_o absurd_a it_o be_v now_o after_o 1600._o year_n for_o any_o man_n who_o desire_v to_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o a_o christian_a to_o deny_v it_o 8._o moreover_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v always_o have_v so_o great_a a_o care_n to_o preserve_v in_o all_o her_o amen_n
the_o son_n of_o mann_n and_o do_v not_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o you_o ought_v to_o communicate_v after_o such_o asort_n to_o the_o holy_a table_n as_o that_o you_o doubt_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o that_o be_v take_v by_o the_o mouth_n which_o be_v believe_v by_o faith_n and_o in_o vain_a do_v these_o answer_n amen_o who_o dispute_v against_o that_o which_o be_v take_v thus_o s._n leo._n 14._o this_o custom_n of_o answer_v amen_o to_o the_o priest_n when_o he_o call_v the_o eucharist_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o universal_o practise_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o cornelius_n who_o be_v a_o holy_a martyr_n and_o make_v bishop_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o year_n 254._o amen_o novatus_fw-la the_o heretik_a change_v the_o answer_v of_o amen_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o fabius_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n set_v down_o by_o eusebius_n in_o the_o 35._o chaper_fw-fr of_o his_o 6._o book_n of_o history_n among_o other_o thing_n accuse_v novatus_fw-la a_o archheretic_n of_o a_o most_o grievous_a offence_n for_o that_o when_o he_o have_v offer_v sacrifice_n and_o shall_v distribute_v unto_o every_o one_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n he_o will_v take_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o communicant_n between_o both_o his_o hand_n and_o will_v not_o let_v they_o go_v until_o he_o have_v bind_v the_o communicant_a with_o this_o oath_n swear_v unto_o i_o by_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus-christ_n that_o thou_o will_v never_o forsake_v i_o nor_o return_v to_o cornelius_n and_o the_o miserable_a man_n say_v s._n cornelius_n who_o be_v to_o receive_v do_v not_o taste_v of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n before_o he_o have_v bind_v himself_o unto_o he_o after_o this_o manner_n and_o he_o who_o shall_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n say_v this_o in_o lieu_n of_o amen_o which_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v say_v i_o will_v from_o this_o time_n forward_o no_o more_o return_n to_o cornelius_n thus_o s._n cornelius_n in_o decipher_n the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o heretic_n novatus_fw-la whereby_o we_o see_v that_o even_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n both_o the_o eucharist_n be_v believe_v to_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n before_o receive_v and_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n in_o all_o age_n use_v to_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n before_o they_o receive_v 15._o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o 29._o sermon_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n make_v also_o mention_v of_o this_o testimony_n which_o all_o the_o faithful_a have_v ever_o give_v to_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n before_o receive_v say_v you_o know_v o_o faithful_a man_n what_o testimony_n you_o have_v give_v unto_o the_o blood_n which_o you_o have_v receive_v for_o certain_o you_o say_v amen_n whereupon_o abel_n the_o answer_v of_o amen_o cry_v against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n like_o the_o blood_n of_o abel_n s._n augustine_n in_o the_o 10._o chapter_n of_o his_o 2._o book_n against_o faustus_n a_o manichean_a heretic_n who_o contemn_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n compare_v the_o cry_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a who_o answer_n amen_o unto_o it_o before_o they_o receive_v it_o unto_o the_o cry_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o abel_n which_o be_v shed_v upon_o earth_n by_o his_o brother_n cain_n say_v god_n say_v to_o cain_n what_o have_v thou_o donn_v the_o voice_n of_o thy_o brother_n blood_n cry_v unto_o i_o from_o the_o earth_n even_o so_o the_o divine_a voice_n in_o the_o scripture_n say_v this_o be_v my_o blood_n do_v reprehend_v the_o jew_n for_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n have_v aloud_o voice_n upon_o earth_n when_o amen_o be_v answer_v unto_o it_o by_o all_o nation_n at_o their_o receive_n of_o it_o this_o of_o amen_o be_v the_o clear_a or_o manifest_a voice_n of_o the_o blood_n which_o the_o blood_n itself_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a redeem_v by_o the_o same_o blood_n do_v express_v thus_o s._n augustine_n who_o word_n we_o may_v use_v word_n for_o word_n against_o our_o adversary_n change_v only_o jew_n for_o puritan_n 16._o wherefore_o i_o humble_o beseech_v the_o reader_n whosoever_o thou_o be_v that_o shall_v read_v these_o our_o book_n and_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n serious_o to_o consider_v with_o thyself_o in_o what_o a_o lamentable_a and_o miserable_a estate_n thou_o live_v see_v that_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v not_o only_o all_o faithful_a people_n who_o ever_o receive_v the_o communion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n cry_v against_o thou_o as_o guilty_a of_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o also_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n itself_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a who_o have_v receive_v even_o as_o do_v the_o blood_n of_o abel_n against_o his_o brothe_n cain_n and_o have_v compassion_n of_o thyself_o yet_o while_o there_o be_v time_n let_v not_o thy_o sense_n deceive_v thou_o nor_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o thy_o will_n hinder_v thou_o nor_o yet_o sloth_n or_o negligence_n so_o lull_v thou_o a_o sleep_n that_o thou_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o cry_n of_o all_o faithful_a people_n and_o nation_n if_o life_n please_v thou_o do_v not_o contemn_v life_n when_o it_o be_v offer_v unto_o thou_o in_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n but_o prepare_v thy_o heart_n to_o receive_v it_o worthy_o that_o thou_o may_v live_v eternal_o amen_n the_o table_n of_o the_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o book_n chap._n i._n what_o we_o understand_v by_o visible_a sacrifice_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a scope_n of_o this_o book_n chap._n ii_o the_o necessity_n of_o visible_a sacrifice_n and_o the_o end_n or_o cause_n why_o it_o be_v institute_v and_o use_v chap._n iii_o all_o the_o gentile_n and_o heathen_a people_n atheist_n and_o epicure_n only_o except_v offer_v visible_a sacrifice_n unto_o their_o suppose_a go_n chap._n iu._n of_o all_o the_o visible_a outward_a action_n of_o man_n exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n be_v chief_o due_a unto_o god_n as_o god_n and_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n chap._n v._n of_o all_o the_o visible_a action_n of_o man_n exterior_a visible_a sacrifice_n be_v only_o due_a unto_o god_n alone_o chap._n vi_o by_o the_o instinct_n of_o nature_n all_o people_n who_o firm_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o his_o providence_n over_o mankind_n offer_v external_a visible_a sacrifice_n to_o some_o god_n true_a or_o false_a chap._n vii_o how_o visible_a sacrifice_n be_v offer_v unto_o god_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o church_n upon_o earth_n and_o shall_v be_v unto_o the_o end_n chap._n viii_o the_o reason_n why_o our_o saviour_n will_v not_o take_v away_o visible_a sacrifice_n out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o establish_v it_o in_o better_a term_n chap._n ix_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o be_v a_o chief_a priest_n of_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o to_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n chap._n x._o at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v to_o be_v offer_v every_o where_o upon_o altar_n among_o the_o convert_a gentile_n chap._n xi_o by_o the_o distinction_n of_o bloody_a and_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n be_v prove_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n chap._n xii_o the_o ancient_a father_n believe_v that_o our_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o establish_v the_o same_o in_o high_a church_n chap._n xiii_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n before_o luther_n believe_v that_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n offer_v unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o sacrifice_n of_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o establish_v they_o in_o his_o church_n chap._n fourteen_o the_o conclusion_n the_o chapter_n of_o the_o 2._o book_n chap._n i._n our_o saviour_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n institute_v a_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n or_o gift_n in_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n in_o commemoration_n of_o he_o chap._n ii_o how_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v for_o you_o import_v also_o a_o sacrifice_n in_o his_o body_n chap._n iii_o the_o scripture_n and_o know_v christian_a man_n book_n who_o write_v of_o this_o subject_n before_o luther_n repute_v heretic_n to_o both_o party_n only_o except_v teach_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n chap._n iu._n remission_n of_o sin_n and_o other_o blessing_n be_v and_o may_v be_v obtain_v by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n chap._n v._n our_o saviour_n command_v that_o we_o shall_v give_v to_o god_n for_o we_o the_o same_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o he_o give_v and_o shed_v and_o how_o all_o the_o host_n offer_v in_o sacrifice_n or_o give_v in_o the_o communion_n be_v one_o chap._n vi_o one_o and_o the_o same_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v in_o diverse_a place_n and_o under_o diverse_a dimension_n at_o the_o same_o tyme._n chap._n vii_o our_o saviour_n be_v chief_a priest_n or_o agent_n in_o offer_v unbloudy_a sacrifice_n and_o administratr_v sacrament_n chap._n viii_o how_o in_o general_a our_o saviour_n by_o his_o omnipotency_n together_o with_o priest_n his_o instrument_n and_o legate_n do_v consecrate_v his_o true_a real_a and_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n chap._n ix_o of_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o true_a real_a and_o substantial_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n after_o consecration_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n chap._n x._o the_o amen_o or_o conclusion_n of_o this_o book_n and_o how_o all_o faithful_a communicant_n have_v use_v to_o say_v amen_o to_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n before_o they_o receive_v finis_fw-la approbatio_fw-la tractatus_fw-la hic_fw-la secundus_fw-la de_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la nihil_fw-la continet_fw-la quod_fw-la aut_fw-la rectae_fw-la fidei_fw-la aut_fw-la bonis_fw-la moribus_fw-la repugnet_fw-la imprimi_fw-la itaque_fw-la poterit_fw-la &_o diwlgari_fw-la datum_n bruxell_n die_v 15._o maij_fw-la 1637._o henricus_fw-la calaenus_n s._n t._n l._n librorum_fw-la censor_n